An amnesiac adjusts to a forgotten life, amid friends who hold secrets to her past |
Pre-note: First of all, I'd like to explain that this story is more or less finished, with a proper beginning and an ending, though there are some juicy parts I left out which I haven't had time to add in yet. As for the chronological order: this story happens after
Furthermore, as with my other stories, if you're unable to finish reading anything in my portfolio in one seating, I really hope you'd come back again (and again, if necessary) to continue where you left off. Sorry: I'm not able to chop this into chapters under individual files, because I've reached my port limit. And please don't be put off by my verbal diarrhea; I just hope that you'll give this story a chance and just browse through first - who knows if you find it to your liking after all? And last but not least, I wish to thank you for visiting me in the first place, and I really hope you enjoy my work. Constructive feedback is always welcomed! Please let me know who you are so I can return the favor! AZURE BLUE 1) Going Home I could not remember a moment when I had not enjoyed the others’ company wholeheartedly, whether individually or collectively. They never cease to make me smile with their lavish attention and friendly banter. Perhaps it had something to do with my long stint at the hospital. I felt like I had stayed there a lifetime, even more so when I sheepishly recall how I had to discover everything again, as if going through a second childhood – how to walk, talk and even feed myself. I had been comatose for months, and when I came to, I had no recollection of who I was, much less how I came into such predicament. I imagine the others were probably crushed to hear about my loss of memory, but nobody ever so much as breathed a word of this to me. Henri had told me the story again and again about how some people in Northern Mugamba had chanced upon me in some bushes by a roadside. Not a very dignified place, I must add. Once they found the identification and travel documents I had on me, they had promptly alerted our headquarters on the other side of the Basin Ocean. According to Henri, a lot of things didn’t add up. For starters, I wasn’t even supposed to be there. I had last been reported to be in the Mucia Pasifika region – which country or city, he didn’t specify. Another puzzling question was the nature of my coma. When the Mugambians found me, it was clear that the trauma that shook my brain so hard it resulted in loss of memory did not occur anywhere near the desert spot where they came upon me, nor was it recent. In fact, the kind people had given detailed accounts of my clean but slightly dusty bandages. It was as if somebody had carefully tended to my wounds but had to leave me there by the roadside due to some unknown reason for sympathetic discoverers to send me safely home. Henri’s tale contained lots of loopholes and raised more questions than answers, like, what was I supposed to be doing in Mucia Pasifika, for example? Or why wasn’t a search party sent to Mugamba to look for me when I was reported missing? Was it because the others lacked the necessary information and weren’t exactly sure where to look for me? Or could it be that they weren’t aware of my disappearance at all, thinking I was still in sunny Pasifika? Sometimes I suspected that Henri held certain information back from me, yet I chose not to confront him. He was after all the only one from the Gang willing to impart valuable information – unlike the others who were more tight-lipped. At times, when I had drained and exhausted Henri of information to the point that he had no drive to continue talking, I would talk instead to the doctors and nurses. They were usually eager to share any information with me through their chats and gossips. Yet their answers seldom satisfied me, as there were still a lot of gray areas they would not, or could not, venture into. It was through such exchange of remarks with a Dr. Ryan that I first heard about the mysterious medical inconsistencies concerning me. I wasn’t sure whether he had deliberately or accidentally let it slip, but the information he relayed in bits and pieces somewhat alarmed me. He had casually mentioned that I had previously crushed my entire left hand in a freak accident a few years before the Mugamba incident. They weren’t able to save it at all and - due to some emerging technological innovation at the time – decided instead to replace the hand from the left wrist up with a bionic one, turning me into a cyborg guinea pig of sorts. The wise guy made wisecracks about how I was forced to wear gloves all the time to hide my mechanically engineered body part “so as not to frighten little children.” He added that it was an ideal place to transplant a transponder – which he assured me the rest of the Gang had, too – with the silicon chip circuitry transmitting a signal which, among other things, acted as a homing device. He claimed this had saved my life more than once and even showed me x-rays and related hospital records to illustrate his point. In fact, this was what prevented my earlier detection in Mugamba and puzzled Dr. Ryan as well– the current absence of the bionic hand, its place taken instead by a donor’s natural hand. I studied the hand in question, flexing and clenching it repeatedly to assure myself it was still attached to the rest of me and would not fall off. Doing this, I noticed the almost invisible line zig-zagging across the wrist and that the whole area from the wrist up was slightly lighter in color when compared to the tan skin on my arm, but not so much as to be noticeable in one passing glance. It also differed from my right hand, the former being a tad larger, with a narrower palm and artistic long and slender fingers. There were bigger pores and more hair on the back of the hand, too. Looking at it prompted me to wonder whether the donor had been male or female. Dead (more likely) or still alive. I was convinced that the hand appeared too dainty and feminine to be a man’s, yet its size made me have second thoughts. Dr. Ryan elaborated how they had taken tissue samples from the hand and ran various tests to determine the identity of the mysterious donor, all at the urging of the Gang when I was deep in my comatose sleep – or so he claimed. The long days at the hospital taught me not to believe nor mind this kooky character too much. But in the end, he explained how he had come to a dead end – the deoxyribonucleic acid samples just didn’t match any existing record in their database. They continued searching for the elusive pair from other hospitals’ database all over the globe, but all to no avail. Dr. Ryan had then went on to criticize the surgery done on my hand – granted, it must have been a tedious time-consuming operation – done not more than a month before I was found, according to his scientific deductions – very carefully done by a caring and considerate benefactor of medical background. It must have been a difficult operation, what with the attachment of sensory and motor endings and support structures, the re-alignment of nerve fiber endings, renewed establishment of mechanosensitivity and neurotransmitters, reconstruction of tissues and regeneration of cells. Yet, Dr. Ryan was quick to point out the unknown doctor’s sloppiness, especially the hurried haphazard stitching which had evidently resulted in scarring – “Almost Frankenstein-like,” he had commented inconsiderately enough. It didn’t help my self-esteem either when he further observed how awkward and unbalanced the hand looked on me. He was adamant that the other doctor should have gone through careful selection to pick a more suitable donor with a hand the size, color and texture much closer to my original one. At the moment, I was still undergoing therapy with the resident physiologist, and my movements, though still somewhat jerking and uncoordinated with slow response, had improved tremendously. I was thankful for that. Sometimes, too, I fancied that the scars made me appear a little stronger. So much for dreaming – either I had been hospitalized for far too long or the head-banging I received affected more than just my memory. I kept wishing there was something different about me, something that would distinguish me from the rest of the pack. Although sometimes I wished I still had my steel cybernetic hand instead – scary-looking, perhaps, but ultimately more macho-looking than even this Frankenstein hand. Other than this, Dr. Ryan had also noted that my forearm had been broken at about the same time I fell into a coma. The radius had snapped in two. By now, the bone had healed and mended almost completely, aside from the fact that the bone had re-aligned in an awkward and crooked angle. Thankfully it wasn’t very evident when seen from the outside. Dr. Ryan commented on my exceptional regenerative abilities, adding as an afterthought that coincidentally it was a pretty common trait amongst the Group. I remembered being surprised to learn this fact. With regards to my broken arm, the good Dr. Ryan had offered to have it pinned and plated through surgery, or at the very least use a titanium shield to protect the area. But the sudden resurfaced childhood memory of a cartoon character having a steel rod inserted into his hand made me balk at the idea. After all, Dr. Ryan kept getting an endless stream of ideas about everything. It was a good thing when I realized one day that his judgment wasn’t very reliable. In fact, he once offered to re-sew my left hand. I wasn’t sure whether he was joking, but the image of him severing my hand and re-attaching it later on really horrified me. Later, the doctor explained that all evidence pointed toward me being comatose at least a month before they discovered me in Mugamba, same time when I broke my arm, same time when I had my Frankenstein hand. Prior to that, he assumed that I had been cared for by a concerned medical practitioner. When I was first sent to this hospital, doctors did not discover any obvious indication of abuse, disease or malnutrition other than the injuries already mentioned. This in itself spoke volumes of the quality of care I had received while lost in the dry poverty- and disease-stricken country of Mugamba, and for this I had been extremely lucky. I had another thing to be grateful for today – I was finally being discharged from Antonio Specialist Medical Center in the Melizian capital city of Kismet Kesuma! This was the first and only home I remember, where I had spent all my waking and sleeping hours being lonely and feeling sorry for myself. I couldn’t wait to be released from this bleak prison, with its artificial cheerful ambience, white pristine walls, thoughtless hospital staff who gossiped and chatted airhead-fashion, unpalatable canteen food and equally bad monotonous hospital food as well as that constant overpowering smell, a mixture of detergent and medication. I couldn’t contain my excitement and was chatting non-stop with Henri while the others busied themselves with helping me pack my things. Though my limbs were still weak, I could walk a little now, using crutches to support and balance myself. But for my check-out, the others were adamant that I just sit in the hospital wheelchair and let them handle things. It was a dreamily beautiful day, and I looked forward to the many outings I was going to have on similar days. Henri was describing to me the Gang’s official headquarters, Cock-a-Doodle Mansion. The name made me giggle and caused some comments from the others. “Who gave it such a funny name, I wonder?” Que asked innocently as he helped press down the clothes that Penny had folded deeper into the suitcase atop my single bed. I saw Skye’s cheeks redden and knew automatically the answer to Que’s question. “Yeah,” Penny chimed in. “Pretty suggestive name, too.” This evoked hoots of laughter from the guys. “Hey,” chided Qit in a voice attempted to be serious. Everyone could see, however, that he was trying his best to stifle a chuckle. “Cool it, will ya? Give her a break. After all, she was only a kid when she was asked to re-name it.” Ari was laughing so hard his face turned as red as Skye’s. “Yeah, Skye, what in the world possessed you to give it such a name?” “Well,” replied Skye in a subdued voice. “I remembered we had a chicken coop in the garden when I was growing up. I loved seeing fluffy yellow chicks running around. Besides, of the few possessions I had when I first came there was this old nursery book my parents must have left me. On its cover it had a picture of the moon and some dancing animals underneath it, including this huge rooster.” “But why Cock?” Que asked cockily. “Why not Hen – sorry, Hen,” he winked at Henri, who at that moment had lost his tongue. “Why not Chick? Chicken? Rooster, even?” “Well, then there wouldn’t be ‘a-Doodle’ at the back now, would it?” Skye answered, her face flushed, still trying to hold on the best she could at the vanishing traces of dignity she had left. “Idiot! Besides, the, erm, rooster is supposed to be king of the coop. I thought it had a nice ring to it, and an appropriate name for our headquarters.” “At age 12, perhaps,” guffawed Que. “Not at 25. Ow!” He winced painfully as Skye dug her fingernails into his shoulder and pinched him hard. It amazed me to see how fast Skye had moved from one end of the 800-square feet room to the opposite end. After that, people shifted their attention elsewhere and conversation resumed on another subject. Through it all, Que continued to rub his sore shoulder for some time. Finally, the packing was done. I discovered that during my eight months’ hospital stay, I had collected quite a lot of knick-knacks. Some were gifts from well-meaning visitors which I didn’t have the heart to throw away, others were my personal belongings the Gang had brought in the hope of triggering some recollection on my behalf. Unfortunately, none of the items struck me as familiar, though they managed to calm and soothe me and made my stay more tolerable just by being remnants of my previous life. Goodbyes were exchanged with the hospital staff. I felt awkward when some of them gave me bear hugs and actually cried. Even the usually unrefined Dr. Ryan was uncharacteristically solemn that day. He shook my hand goodbye and told me to take good care of myself, then he abruptly pulled Que aside. I saw the former frown and wag his crooked index finger in an agitated manner and caught a glimpse of Que’s discomfort before Skye quickly wheeled me away from the row of waving hospital staff onto the polished patio. I turned back to wave a final goodbye and noted that Qit was lagging behind, one of my heavy suitcases in his hand, trudging along slowly while discussing something quietly with his suddenly grim-looking twin. A million questions popped into my head, but I bit my tongue, not wanting to stir any awkward scenarios. Especially when I noticed the others avoiding looking at Que, concentrating instead on cheerful conversation. Nevertheless, they had to stop when we came to the exit door because no one had the car keys. Penny told me that for convenience’s sake, instead of driving separately they had taken a multi-purpose vehicle with them. “Hey, Que!” Ari, finally the first other than Qit to acknowledge Que after Dr. Ryan’s finger-wagging episode, hollered to the twins at the back. “Hurry up! The keys are with you, aren’t they?” “Yes, they’re right here,” answered Que in a strange voice as he and Qit hurried over. “OK,” ordered Ari, as if nothing was wrong. “We’ll wait here with the bags while you go get the car.” “Right,” replied Que. Up close, I took in his droopy shoulders and downcast eyes. I suspect most of them were aware of this, too, because they looked edgy and nervous for some reason. He fished out the keys from his pocket and began to jog toward the parking lot. “Take a good look around,” Penny advised me. “This might be the last time you’ll see this home of yours. Make sure you don’t miss it too much.” “Yeah, right,” I answered sarcastically. But quietly, I did take a good look around, or at least the best I could from my vantage point atop the wheelchair. I took in the rows of well-kept hedges, which reminded me of countless hours spent watching the gardeners trimming them from my window when there was nothing better to do. I memorized the way the palm trees swayed gently in the breeze and remembered how comfortingly cool it was to escape the glare of the sun by sitting under the shade of the old giant oak trees, with birds tweeting soothingly up on the branches. These I know I’d miss. All too soon, Que sped up the driveway in a red Tacara MPV and braked abruptly in front of us. There was a sudden clamor, with everyone deciding who should sit where while Ari and Qit hoisted my belongings onto the back of the car. Que came over and opened the front passenger door wide and made things simple for everybody. “Well, all you others can squeeze into the back for all I care, but Azure here will sit in front,” he announced, and before anyone could say otherwise, he had scooped me up and gently lowered me onto the front passenger seat. “More ample space for her that way.” There was a surprised silence, then I heard Skye barking out orders. “Qit, close the hatch. Ari, please return the wheelchair inside. You others, get in.” Everyone followed her directions like clockwork. I smiled at this and turned to see Que getting into the driver’s seat next to me. He gave me a concerned smile and reached over to fasten my seatbelt for me, his pleasant citrus-based perfume wafting up my nose. “You OK?” he inquired, peering into my eyes. I realized suddenly that his gold-flecked irises were a startling cerulean blue, almost the same shade as the clear sky above. I couldn’t help also but to notice how a strand of his hair was close to poking one eye. “Yeah,” I managed to croak my answer. He nodded in approval as he shifted into gear, checked to see that Ari had climbed in and had properly shut the back passenger door, and began to drive. Not knowing what to say or act, I chose instead to fold my arms in a bid to camouflage my discomfort at his proximity. I refused to indulge in small talk and opted instead to concentrate on the side mirror and watch the reflection of the hospital grounds fade slowly from view. Behind us, the others were making a ruckus, laughing over Penny’s current choice of beau and predicting when the relationship would end, with Penny negating every prediction with “No, no, you don’t understand – this time it’s real!” 2) Home Once the heavy wrought iron front gates with the equally heavy security swung shut behind us, and we were finally in Cock-a-Doodle Mansion’s grounds, I gasped in disbelief. Henri’s clumsy attempt at descriptions didn’t do the place justice at all. Nothing could have prepared me for it. I realized it was as if I was looking at it through a stranger’s eyes, as if I was a first-time visitor and not a permanent resident there. I was amazed to find that the area was as huge as the hospital, perhaps even larger. It was evident that the place was old, perhaps handed down generation after generation. Big old mildewed trees dotted the expansive garden, with trunks thick enough to be a Swiss Family Robinson house, branches intertwined reaching for the heavens, and enormous roots snaking in and out of the ground which you wouldn’t want to trip over. The big leafy tapestry above made the site cool and shady, ideal for picnics. Now and then I spied a squirrel darting up a tree or a bird breaking into song on an overhanging branch. The driveway was long and winding. Fallen leaves littered the path and danced underfoot when we sped by. Once, I glimpsed remnants of an old forsaken building. Only part of the dark stone walls could be seen, and even these were obscure and covered by creepers. I turned toward the back and asked Skye what it was. “That was the original mansion,” came the reply. “Some time after I arrived here to stay, a fire razed the building, burning it to the ground. The government then stepped in and offered to rebuild the mansion at another site within the compound. The new mansion was built in record-breaking time, taking only half a year or so to complete. I stayed there during its construction in parts of the building fit for occupation.” “I wonder who burned it down?” Ari asked wonderingly, whistling a comical tune. This struck me as absurdly funny, and I burst out laughing, only to stop when I realized that Que wore a stony expression and that the others were subdued, too. I turned to look out the window in a bid to cover my sheepishness and resolved to get to the bottom of this. Soon, the mansion loomed into view. I was astounded to see that it was a sprawling three-story complex complete with amenities. Penny was going on about the indoor pool and the games courts at the back. She also pointed out that the building we were passing, which I had earlier thought was a house, was really their car garage. We finally stopped at the main entrance. The others clambered out and Que rushed to my side. “It’s OK,” I told him, blushing a little when he still went ahead and picked me up. “You can put me down. I just need to have my crutches, then I’ll be fine.” He lowered me feet first to the ground. I stood up and leaned against the car for balance but he had already put an arm around me to steady me. Qit came up from the back of the MPV and silently passed me the requested crutches. I used them to hobble through the opened doors with one watchful twin on each side. Did I mention that though twins, they were nonidentical and different as night and day? Like Penny and Henri, Que was fair-haired, but Qit on the other hand had dark hair and eyes. Que was more open and always ready for a laugh, while Qit seemed stoically quiet and distant at times. Strangers would have automatically guessed they were acquaintances rather than brothers. Once inside the mansion, I gasped like a gold fish out of water. I was deeply impressed with the high plaster ceilings and ornate trimmings adorning the hall and reception area. For that was what it was. “Allow me to introduce you to Ms. Sandra,” Ari gestured toward an attractive brunette who left her reception desk to greet me with a welcoming smile and a friendly handshake. I was glad of this. I knew her face was familiar somehow; I guess she must have visited me at the hospital at one time or another. But for the life of me, I couldn’t remember what her name or her relationship to me was. “She’s what we call the Manageress,” Ari continued. “She manages everything from guests to staff. You’ll find out just how dependent we are on her soon enough. If you run into problems, like not knowing how to contact Skye, or you need somebody from Housekeeping, or you need some extra medication, Sandra’s the man. Or woman. Just tell her and she’ll take care of the rest.” We continued walking past the reception and stood at the bottom of the staircase. The staircase actually consisted of double open stairs on both sides, with wrought iron railings incorporating graceful curlicues. The stairs, one facing to the right and one to the left, met in the middle landing, with wider steps leading up from it to the first floor. “You can find the library, gym, swimming pool, spa and sauna, music room, war rooms – that’s what we call our meeting rooms here, lounge, kitchen and dining room on the ground floor. The first floor contains the support staff’s quarters as well as archives and storage rooms. We all reside on the second floor,” explained Skye. “Come here, Azure,” she called out to me, patting the seat with its rail mounted to the stair treads on the furthest left. “”What the heck is that?” I inquired while coming closer for better inspection. I had noticed it when approaching the staircase and had my suspicions, but refused to think much of it till now. “It’s a stair-lift,” explained Skye. “I know you’re gonna be able to walk properly soon, and probably won’t be using this for very long. Besides, there’s the elevator at the back but it’s a rather long way off, and the smell isn’t exactly pleasant. It’s mostly used to transport crates and garbage. So in case you prefer to use the stairs, we’ve installed this for you. Come on, why don’t you give it a try?” “Is this thing stable?” I laughed nervously. I was dismayed at her suggestion actually and was more than a little offended that they were making such a big fuss over my limitations. Yet, a side of me couldn’t help but be touched by their obvious concern and initiative. “Sure it is,” replied Skye comfortingly. “Just ask Ari and Qit. They’ve been trying it out for weeks just for the fun of it. Come, let me show you how to control the up/down switch. It’s very easy. It’s battery-operated, too, just in case there’s a blackout or something.” “Yeah,” Ari chimed in. “Like the major one we had last month – what a bummer. It was all due to that stupid gale. I missed the finale to A Cruel Death because of it.” I smiled, recalling him complaining about the same thing when he visited me the month before. “It has a ½ horsepower motor with a bi-directional control button,” Skye was explaining. “The backrest, seat and footrest are all adjustable. The armrests and seat can swivel or be flipped up. The footrest can also be flipped up and it has an anti-skid surface. There’s a bi-directional obstruction sensor attached to it, too.” “Why don’t you just try it?” Henri implored. “We’ve requested for a leather seat so it should be quite comfortable.” I merely looked at his beseeching smile for a while, trying to make up my mind, then I grinned back my affirmation. What could I say? They had all been pretty convincing. I heard Henri gave a sigh of relief before he came to help me onto the seat. Skye explained in detail how to operate the stair-lift. She added that I could place the crutches on my lap when going up and down the stairs. “No need for that today,” Que retorted, taking the crutches from my hands. So it was in this fashion that I reached the first floor, then the second floor through an identical set of staircase. They pointed out their various rooms and told me mine was the one on the farthest left. No wonder both stair-lifts had been attached to the leftmost handrails. Henri elaborated how they had taken my belongings from the storage room on the first floor and placed them in my then empty room. This confused me. “W-what do you mean, m-my things were in the store?” I stammered. For some reason this piece of news distressed me. “Does this mean I hadn’t been staying here before this?” Henri was clearly taken aback by the question, but quickly regained his composure. “No, it’s just that you – like the rest of us – have property elsewhere. Just because this is our H.Q. doesn’t mean we stay here all the time. Sometimes we go back to our hometowns to meet family and friends, sometimes we just go to a secluded spot to unwind and get away from it all.” “Oh,” I was deep in thought. His answer made sense, even though it did pry open a new set of questions. “I didn’t realize I had money. Where, by the way, is my other residence?” Henri looked flustered and stumped without an answer. But quick-witted Skye came to the rescue. “Look, I’ll give you the deeds and documents of all your assets,” she smiled at me soothingly. “I know it’s your first day back and it’s only natural for you to be overcome with anxiety. As for your residence, you have more than one, more than two even. I’ll explain everything in detail, to make you better understand. Will tomorrow be OK with you?” “Tomorrow it is, then,” I smiled in response, glad that every passing day brought me closer to knowing the person I was before. I needed to have a sense of knowing, of belonging. Otherwise I felt I wouldn’t be complete. As we approached my room, Penny went on about how there’s a ladder going up to the roof, but warned me not to attempt going there until my legs were much stronger. Henri walked ahead and unlocked the double wooden doors with a skeleton key, then threw them open wide so that all might enter. As I limped into the room, I gasped appreciatively at the sight of the richly brown wood-heavy room. I knew I must have come across like a blubbering village idiot to the others when I dashed around the room as fast as my crutches could carry me to inspect everything, but I was past caring. For starters, it was at least three times as big as my hospital room had been – which I had previously thought was big enough. The floors were made of 5’ teak planks in natural finish – Penny clarified that the floor had originally been made of stone but I had had it changed because it made the room too cold and caused my bare feet to ache and swell. The handcrafted wood cornices and plaster ceiling corresponded well with the floor. The walls were a soft pink with a hint of magenta and the wallpaper borders had a white background and embossed in tiny brown Maranganese script. All along the walls were newly installed handgrip bars which Skye assured me would be detached once I was stronger. The elegant curtains cascaded down to the floor, with decorative wrought iron ceiling-mounted brackets and a combination of lace and scalloped reddish brown curtains bearing huge floral motifs. The latter had been pulled to the sides and tied with cream-and-brown checkered bows. It was through the secondary hazy cream-colored lace curtain that the sunlight streamed into the room to brighten the otherwise dark and moody ambience. There was a queen-sized teak four poster bed with hand-carved ornate designs at one end. A plush brown-toned duvet bearing animal prints covered it, and the canopy was made of brown-checkered valance and accompanying sheer beige netting, tied to the posts with wafts of dark cream satin ribbons. At the foot of the bed was an equally proportionate locked wooden chest doubling as a backless king bench, complete with beige cushioned upholstery and a matching cylindrical cushion by the side of each armrest. Under it was a big soft delicately woven Barbadian carpet. Skye passed me a key to open the thick-lidded trunk. Inside was some cash, ID and other personal documents, which Skye promised to go through with me later. A floor-to-ceiling mirror adorned the wall on each side of the headrest, and there was a matching bedside table with a table lamp consisting of carved marble and pale yellow fringes by its side. There was a hand-carved teak-wood double-door at one end of the room which opened up to a walk-in closet with all my clothing and accessories organized neatly in the appropriate shelves, drawers and hanging areas. A matching dressing table and stool stood alongside it. There was also a dark brown-bricked open fireplace, which looked more decorative than useful. Its poker, broom, scoop and tongs dangled from a wrought iron tree by its side. Skye later on told me it was still operational, and can be used when the cold and wet monsoon season came around. Directly in front of it was a plush carpet made to resemble tiger fur. Beside this, propped like the fireplace against the wall, was a teakwood easel, with an unfinished oil pastel painting mounted against it, the subject still unknown due to obscurity. Other than that, the room had a medium-sized alcove consisting of a mahogany foldable study desk with a PC on top and a telephone beside it, complete with a complementing chair, a comfortable leather two-seater and a low wooden bookshelf filled with supposedly some of my favorite books and personal documents. Not far from it was a mini refrigerator half-filled with fruits, chocolate and canned drinks, and beside it a three-shelved pantry of sorts containing plastic-wrapped snacks was built into the wall. I explored the bedroom in its entirety through the eyes of a stranger and quickly assessed that one: the others sure went through a lot of trouble to decorate this place from scratch, and two: whoever slept in this room was evidently a dreamer and a romantic, too, judging from the furniture. Oh, yeah, I thought to myself as I browsed through a self-scrawled tale in loose parchments taken from the bookshelf. Add ‘artistic’ to the list, too. Afterward, Skye showed me the bay windows which came with the room being a corner unit. Through it I could see part of the estate stretched out below. Directly under the windows was a sky blue-checkered cushioned bench – the only blue furniture evident – with storage compartments beneath the seat which I discovered was half-filled with old, dirty and sometimes torn comic books, paperbacks and sheet music. Which prompted a question from me. “Did I play a musical instrument or something?” I asked Skye, gesturing toward the sheet music. “Well,” answered Skye carefully, perhaps a little surprised that I didn’t know the answer myself. “All of us had to learn music at some point. You used to play the piano. There’s one in the music room on the ground floor.” Used to play, the word reverberated in my brain. Does that mean I don’t have that musical ability anymore? Not that I really cared, but it was nice to know that I unknowingly possessed a surprise talent. Skye next led me to what I thought was a huge window on the adjacent wall. It turned out to be a sliding door which, when opened, allowed access to a huge and unbelievably long balcony made of marble tiles and white balustrade. A few garden chairs in white wrought iron bearing pink rose designs and complementing circular garden tables, as well as some classic-looking garden lamps and potted palm plants, dotted the otherwise sparse area. Skye explained that the same balcony was also similarly connected to the other rooms. I walked around for a bit, noticing the sliding door leading to the adjacent unit, and because I couldn’t remember the room positions I was told, asked who my next-door neighbor was. “That’d be me,” replied a beaming Que. “You’re welcome anytime. Just use this back entrance, so that the others won’t know.” I simply stared at him while he teasingly winked then winced in pain when Skye reached out and pinched him hard for the second time that day, all the while unsure of how to interpret his joking invitation. “Just pay no attention to this buffoon,” advised Skye while Que aww-ed in retaliation. “If you need to find me, I’ll be in the corner unit on the other end. But for now, come and enjoy the view from here.” She pulled my hand and I followed her to the balcony’s edge. The view was spectacular. I could see almost all of the walled-in mansion grounds and pointed out toward the lake behind the building as well as four horses grazing the grass beside it. “What are those?” I asked, asking for further clarification and not exactly sure how to phrase my words. “That’s a man-made lake,” Penny replied, leaning against the balustrade next to me. “Convenient when you feel like swimming out in the open. It has a few ducks and geese and fishes living in it, too.” I inspected the lake again and noticed that she was right. “You can’t see it from here, but somewhere at the back, beneath all that leafy foliage, are the badminton, tennis and basketball courts. We have swings and see-saws down there, too.” “But how about those horses?” I asked again, curious to know the answer. “The brown stallion and white mare are Skye’s,” came Penny’s response. “The chestnut mare is mine – her name’s Cupcake. And that black monster over there – that one’s yours.” My mouth fell open as I looked at the tall black stallion. His appearance struck me as nasty looking with his somewhat anti-social stance and borderline hostile demeanor toward the other horses, and the thought that I owned him made my palms twitch and sweat. A lump formed in my throat when I remembered what Penny had called him. “Th-that’s mine? Are you sure?” “Th-that’s yours,” answered Penny, tongue in cheek. “I am sure.” “B-but I don’t even know how to ride a horse!” I finally blurted out in sudden panic. Penny frowned at me. “You sure forgot a lot of things when you’ve been sleeping.” “That’s enough, Penny,” snapped Skye. She took me firmly by the arm and led me back to my room while soothing me with her vote of confidence. “Don’t worry, Azure. We have all the time in the world. You can take a refresher course in riding, and I’ll be there rooting for you. You’ll be a natural horsewoman in no time flat.” The next stop was the bathroom with shower and toilet attached. This time I was not surprised to find it spacious, covered from floor to ceiling with dark blue Varahah marble with inlaid light gray Mordoccan marble. Light came from the many spotlights which covered the dark blue ceiling, as well as from the long narrow horizontal strip of rose-patterned stained glass window at the top portion of the wall facing the balcony. Like the bedroom, the bathroom also had wall-mounted handgrip rails. In the middle of the room and against a wall was the round clam-shaped lavender bathtub sunk deep in the floor, with the polished silver faucet and its lever handles as well as an accompanying hand-shower at feet level. “This hydro system has an in-line heater and timer,” explained the technically well-versed Skye. I simply nodded at every punctuation mark-pause as if I understood every single word she said. “You have a grab bar over there, easier for you to get in and out and over here is the digital temperature display. Now this one here is the on/off button, this is the air volume control, suction cover, jets. It can help calm you down by massaging, and the waterfall filler spout has the option to recirculate water. This thing comes equipped with an in-built stereo, too.” “OK,” I said with no real understanding of what she had said, and followed her toward the lavender glassed shower enclosure. “The door can be opened either from the left or right,” she elaborated. “There’s the showerhead and the hand-shower hose there is 60”. It has four adjustable body sprays with ½” with thermostatic mixer. There’s the volume control valve and diverter. It also has mood lighting options. You can use the shelf there to store things, too. Very handy.” Next came the lavender two-piece toilet and I was interested to note that the toilet cover had actual tiny multi-colored seashells covered with transparent hard plastic on its back. It was evidently a toilet with a built-in washlet. “Ah,” Skye had added. “But did you know it has a heated seat with temperature control? And the dual water spray comes with a choice of either cold or warm water? The plastics are anti-bacterial, too.” “Oh, please,” I whispered into amused Henri’s ear. “This is way too much information for me!” “I heard yours flushes automatically, too,” he murmured back, chuckling. “Very state-of-the-art.” By now, Skye had finished her guided tour and gestured me to join her back in the bedroom. I passed by the wall-hung frame of wash basin with the transparent blue-tinted glass top, central silver faucet and side towel bars. I had no doubt this one came with a hot/cold water option, too. A ceiling-height shelf built into the granite wall and half-filled with various soaps, common medications, terry towels and robes flanked the basin on both sides. On the bottom were a pull-out laundry hamper and a tilt-out waste can, too. The mirror directly above the basin was also interesting. It was the same width as the basin and was formed in the shape of a pond, with a blue painted seashell border and spotlights illuminating it from the side. When I came out, I saw Skye seated on the right-hand corner of my bed, near the headrest. She lifted up the edge of the duvet to expose a control panel attached to the side of the wooden bed. She explained the button functions for me, demonstrating how to control the bedroom lights and temperature, lock and unlock the doors and windows, operate the ceiling-mounted television set which when descended from its storage place atop the ceiling faced the bed directly, switch on the in-built stereo which may be heard through in-built speakers, and even an intercom unit and panic button in case I “needed help in a jiffy.” “So now,” she smiled at me. “Welcome home.” 3) First Night Home Qit and Ari had already put down my suitcases inside the closet and had inquired whether I needed help unpacking. They even invited me to join them downstairs for some tea, considering that it was already 5 p.m. I politely declined their offers and gave fatigue as my excuse. Besides, I told them the earliest I was going to unpack was more probably tomorrow rather than today. While going out the doors with the others, Skye and Henri thoughtfully hung back to assure me that they’d ask for my dinner to be brought up later on. I merely managed to smile gratefully in answer before closing the heavy doors behind their disappearing backs. I stretched out on the bed, and was greatly pleased to discover how cool the sheets were, how cozy the comforter was and how soft and fluffy were the many down-feathered pillows. I practiced using the bedside control panel to adjust the room temperature to a more agreeable one and intended to wash my face and change into more comfortable wear but I had already fallen asleep without even finishing the thought, stretched out on the strange brown bed in this strange room, still in my jeans and checkered shirt, one shoe still intact and the other dangling toward the earth from one foot. I awoke from my dreamless sleep feeling dizzy, tired and still somewhat unrefreshed. I glanced at the antique clock on the bedside table and discovered that it was close to 10.30 p.m. already. I forced myself to an upright position, slowly prying my sneakers and socks off my feet, then stumbled my way to the bathroom by grabbing the wall rails. There, I helped myself to a refreshing cool bath without using any of the additional facilities the tub may have to offer, using a towel taken from the wall shelf to dry myself and wrapping a terry robe around myself before stepping out of the bathroom. I went to the main door and peered out to the corridor. The passage was empty except for the line of lighted wall lamps illuminating the place and a tray consisting of a plate of T-bone steak and fries plus a glass of lemon tea, with a slice of lemon perched on the topside of the glass. I raised it to my lips and discovered it cool to the touch. Most probably it had been iced lemon tea, but the ice had long melted already. Straightening up with one hand against the stout door for support and with the tray balanced in one hand, I finally noticed the single stalk of red rose with a note attached to it lying beside the plate. The note read: “Hope this will help you get your spirits back.” How sweet, I thought to myself and broke into a smile. Taking the tray inside, I closed the door behind me. With one hand gripping the rail, I made my way toward the study desk and plopped down onto the cushioned seat with the tray on the desk surface. Remembering that I hadn’t eaten anything since the afternoon, I heard my stomach growl and ravenously began to attack the food, finishing it off with the drink and feeling quite full suddenly. It was a superb meal, as all food were when hunger was great. I sat on the bed after brushing my teeth, donning on a pair of comfortable cotton pajamas I found hanging in my closet and returning the empty plate and glass on the floor in the corridor outside. I began to wonder who the chef was. Naturally it would have been one of the support staff from the first floor. And that was how it started, the questions. The lights were set at dim, and the room was pretty dark when devoid of sunlight, but I didn’t bother changing the setting. I lay there in semi-darkness, my hands grasped under my head as I contemplated the room. What was I doing there? Was this where I belonged? Why wasn’t there even a scrap of memory retained in my head regarding this place? I started attacking the choice of colors. Why too many browns and creams and beiges in this room? I felt deep inside of me that the only color I have ever felt truly comfortable with was blue, in all its shades and hues. This strong belief echoed through my very being. It disturbed me that the room, which was supposed to be personally mine and by right should reflect my personality as a mirror would, had been covered mostly in brown. I could understand that choice of wooden floorboards and wooden furniture, I had always realized that my body could never retain its warmth on its own for long. And that, as Penny had reminded me, I wasn’t partial to walking barefoot on cold stone slabs as my ankles tended to swell and my feet ache to the bone. But the ornate (to my standards, that is) decorations? Was it absolutely necessary? I loved beauty, don’t get me wrong; it was just that I’ve always believed myself to be a simple person, and the grandness of the room was, frankly said, making my stomach queasy. Being a normally rational human being, I recognized the cause of this dissatisfaction as trivial. I knew it was only a choice of colors and furniture, but the implications were loud enough to upset me. I couldn’t comprehend the thoughts and subsequent actions that could have led to the room being what it was at present. And this disturbed me strongly. All of a sudden, my thoughts turned to the horse. As black as night and with a wild arrogant air about him. A monster, Penny had called him. What was its name? I tried racking my brains but couldn’t find an answer. What convinced me to own him? He must have been pretty special for me to select him out of all the horses in the world. Because, I assumed, he was ill tempered and prone to nasty tantrums? Or maybe because I was a masochist who liked having sadistic creatures around – could it be? True, he was a spectacular specimen in his own right, and looked taller and stronger than the rest when I looked down at him from the balcony above. But still, it didn’t make much sense owning a horse which you couldn’t control and perhaps could not even ride. Speaking of which, did I ever really learn how to ride a horse? And how to play the piano and be able to read sheet music? Just how many skills or talent did I possess previously which I may have to re-learn now? I was astounded and dismayed by these ideas, sharply reminded by how hard it had been initially to re-learn even basic things when I was hospitalized, like how to walk and talk. An artistic talent may be added to the list, I thought as well, taking in the unfinished painting on the easel and books filled with self-scrawled tales on the shelf. I didn’t feel I could paint or write. I didn’t feel I could ride a horse, too – heck, how could I muster up enough courage just to get close to the black stallion? And as for my musical talent, I didn’t even understand the sheet music when I held them right in front of my nose – they were mere gibberish symbols to me, more like a foreign language’s script. Bearing this in mind, how could I actually play the piano? Hey, maybe I could play by ear, I reasoned. Yeah, maybe that’s it. That skill doesn’t need musical literacy. From there, my thoughts shifted to the Gang. What had brought us close together? Henri had told me that all of us, other than him, were orphans. Was that the reason? We kept close because we had become used to treating each other as family? And were the others really and sincerely as close to me as the image they projected to me? Why were we living together, and in such a big complex, too? Why did we call our home our headquarters? Was that an inside joke or something closer to reality? I remembered the reception area and the fact that not one support staff had I seen when I arrived, except perhaps for Ms. Sandra. Thinking about the gang made me realize that they all made a good-looking group in their own right. Well, except perhaps for somewhat plain and lanky Henri Lait. I admit I personally found his countenance pleasing to my eyes, and his humble and easy ways charming and agreeable, but there was no denying it – he was unfortunate compared to the rest when it came to the looks department. When I contemplated it, I decided that we were all a close bunch, although sometimes Henri gave the impression that he didn’t really belong or feel comfortable with the group, and vice versa. When asked, Henri had explained that was because he had only joined the gang a few years back and sometimes had trouble understanding the others, especially when they cracked personal inside jokes or talked about things that happened before his arrival. They never did it intentionally to exclude him, nevertheless it still hurt him and made him feel left out. When I heard him say that, I felt really sorry for him and felt we shared a common kinship. Like him, I too often felt left out when the others inconsiderately forgot about my amnesia and talked about old times or made inside jokes they thought I might understand, but which in actuality I did not. To me, Henri was the one I liked best and felt most comfortable with for no actual reason. Sometimes when he came to visit me in the hospital with the others, I couldn’t wait for the others to leave us alone. Because the only time he really became himself was only when the two of us were left in the room, opening up to me, telling me stories and chatting about stuff he would never have brought up in the others’ presence. I recalled his mousy disheveled mop, with his long ultra-light hair constantly getting into his eyes, and his innocent washed-out blue eyes with the golden flecks. While the others were the same age as I was, he was two years older and his height, only an inch or two taller than me, made him the most vertically-challenged guy in the group. Compared to the other blond guy in the pack, Quraini Harqis, Henri’s looks seemed pale and apt to fade into the wallpaper, whereas Que’s were loud and, I don’t know, the word ‘flashy’ came to mind. Perhaps it was due to their different personalities – Henri was the more quiet and careful type, taking his time to think out his thoughts properly before slowly mouthing them into words, while Que seemed well aware of his roguish good looks and appeared to flaunt it through his provocative, mischievously-amusing and impulsive manner. Aside from the two, the only blond one left was a female and the only Caucasian in the gang – Penelope Gage. Standing at 5’ 8”, she was easily the tallest female, too. Heck, she was even taller than poor loveable Hen. With her long beige light hair coming down to her waist – most often than not tied up simply in a ponytail – and her slightly freckled face and wide baby blue eyes, she often reminded me of an adorable doll. Being a sharp dresser didn’t hurt, things, either. I often noticed male aides and doctors gawking at her whenever she took me for a ride on my wheelchair in the hospital grounds. But Penny could sometimes be biting and callous at times, especially when she was with me. I still hadn’t figured out whether she was like this by nature or because she disliked me at some level. The two other boys in the group – Qitler Harqis and Chief Arealrealac – both had dark brown hair. They were both somewhat serious in their demeanors, though their ways differed to some extent. Qitler with his cream-colored skin, dark coffee hair and clear hazel eyes struck me as a deliberate and methodical person. He seemed to prefer to let others take the limelight, but even when he chose to merely stay in the background, the average person would still automatically single him out. Because that was just the kind of person he was – somebody you couldn’t ignore, who let his presence be felt even in the darkest of nights and deepest of silence. Not very good at making conversation, at least not with me, he seemed grave in a bookish fashion and somewhat aloof at times. And being slightly muscular and tall, he was not any less attractive compared to his twin. Henri, the constant source of vital information, had told me the twins’ tragic story: how they had been separated at birth, due to a family feud at the time which resulted in the murder of their parents. As a consequence, Qit was allowed to stay in the Harqis regal family home and was raised in a rigid manner, cultivating many skills from traditional swordplay to historical literature. On the other hand, the younger Que, previously destined to join his parents’ fate, had been rescued by a caring hermit and raised in the wilds, which explained why he seemed like a carefree, open and outdoorsy type of person. It had been a long tale, with most of the Harqis family wiped out by the time Qit was 12. That had been one of the reasons why he had lost all royalty privileges, especially after the grudging self-professed revolutionists sieged, ransacked and burned down his home. When circumstances brought the two brothers together at age 13, they didn’t realize they were twins. In fact, they didn’t get along well with one another at first. At that moment, I had asked Henri the reason for the hostility between the Harqis twins. He seemed to hesitate before replying that at the time, both of them had been interested in Skye. When I heard this gem, I immediately burst out in a giggling fit. I wasn't sure exactly why back then, but this piece of news, even though an eye-opener to our intra-gang relationships, tickled me. I must have ticked Henri off with my laughter for he refused to continue telling me the story afterward. In the end I had to figure out the ending myself from bits and pieces of conversation strung together to make a pattern: that Skye had chosen Qit in the end, but they had broken up not long afterward; and that the relationship between the twins improved over the years they spent together in Cock-a-Doodle Mansion. Story over, let us now continue with Arealrealac Moorloch, a name Melizianised due to difference in language meanings. Ari was big and muscular with skin tanner than the rest. As was the trait among his clan, he had Thanish dark looks, with thick eyebrows, brown hair so dark it was almost black, and brooding chestnut eyes. According to Henri, he had been a radical Underground leader during his teens and before his group was disbanded, after which he chose to surface and dwell above-ground. His background lent sense to his personality: his leadership abilities were apparent, his steps were sure and his presence was commanding. He was often barking out orders but the others did not seem to mind as he was not bossy, and more than once I had found his advice insightful and perceptive. Even though serious, there was still a caring and playfully relaxed side to him which he often showed when in the company of close friends. And finally, my thoughts moved to Skye. As I had overheard Qit commenting before, if there was ever any perfect woman who walked the earth, then it would have to be her. With silky midnight-blue hair which came down half-way down her back and doe eyes which turned coal black or mahogany brown depending on what time of day it was, she was easily the singularly most attractive member of our pack. Her light tan skin was smooth as porcelain and there had not been a single time when I was with her that I did not see at least one man, other than the gang’s male members, straining his neck to get a second or a better look at her. Sometimes her perfection perplexed me, sometimes it exasperated me. She never seemed to get wet when it drizzled, or her clothes never had any accidental stains or creases on them. While everyone turned out looking wild after being out on a windy day, her hair would amazingly still be immaculate, her articles of clothing all appropriately in place. Que had once also told me that she was the most intelligent one among us, with an I.Q. of 200. Bearing this in mind, it was no wonder how good her problem-solving skills were, for she always seemed to know the answer to any question and nothing seemed to ruffle her. At one time, Penny had even confided in me that she would prefer not to go with Skye when attending a function or party. I mean, which woman would enjoy having all the men ogling at your friend and totally ignoring you instead? Or worse, think that you are clumsy, dumb and ugly compared to your friend just because she happens to be far more elegant, beauteous and entertaining than you could ever hope to be? Other than that, she was naturally a born leader, and even Ari tended to follow her directions without giving it much thought, being used already to such ways. She was shrewd and honest to a fault. And multi-talented, too; just how multi, I wasn’t too sure. Poor Penny. I knew she genuinely liked Skye, but the former could never completely hide her resentment toward the latter from me. It must have been tough competing against and residing in the same house as such a gal. In fact Skye sometimes seemed to belong to a whole new species altogether. An alien breed, more likely. I have often wondered what the others saw in me when they claimed that Skye and I resembled each other closely that strangers could have thought we were twins. After all, I’ve never thought of myself as being beautiful and surely I was far from being perfect. Nevertheless, I admitted that we had the same body type. Naturally though, after my long hospitalization, I was skinnier than she was, and while her baby fine hair reached somewhere below her shoulders and curled beautifully at the ends, my hair which doctors had previously shaved for an operation was just beginning to grow at a snail’s pace, giving me a tomboyish appearance. In fact, I recalled the time when I had inquired whether there was a possibility of Skye and me actually being twins separated at birth, same as Qit and Que. After all, we did have similar looks and traits, and names each representing a similar shade of blue. And besides, Skye’s birth name had been Azura, very much similar to my own name. Que, who had been sitting beside me, had laughed and put down the novel he had been reading out to me. He assured me that unlike him and his brother, Skye at least had clear recollections of her parents when she was growing up, and was positive she had been a twin-less child. Besides, my name wasn’t really my birth name; volunteers who helped me when I left my war-torn hometown had given it. There had been many times when I wondered why Skye was clearly the most protective toward me. Was it because she viewed me as weak and in need of protection? Was it because of our physical similarities that caused feelings of responsibility as if toward one’s sibling surface? I also speculated the possible combination of events which could have awarded her ownership of such an immense mansion. Nobody in his right mind would have simply passed over the deeds to a mere 12-year old kid. I suspect there was a long and winding tale attached to this mystery. And in fact, why were there so many tests carried out just to gain entry into the mansion? Was there any criteria in order to reside there? I somehow wasn’t under the impression that just any Tom, Dick or Harry could gain an entry into this fairly prestigious residence. And why would we want to stay there in the first place? Could it be that we had been cast off, alone and abandoned with nowhere else to go to? Perhaps Cock-a-Doodle Mansion had seemed like a last resort to us. Perhaps. And how the heck could I have possibly had the means to be able to purchase properties and sustain an undoubtedly high-maintenance horse, too? What had been my occupation, for I seemed to have been wealthy enough to be able to afford all these expensive niceties? In fact, I was curious to find out what the others did for a living, too. These, and other thoughts too intangible to grasp and hold in my mind for long, went through my head. I did not fall into an exhausted sleep until some time after 3 a.m. 4) First Night’s Dream I was awakened rudely, not long after drifting into slumber, by sharp resounding slaps across the face. I awoke with a surprised splutter, and slowly my eyes began to focus. I was more than surprised to discover Skye sitting astride me, shaking my shoulders hard, and what appeared to me as an intensely disturbed look on her face. Seeing that I had come to my senses, she let go of me and allowed me to sit up slowly. I had to shake my head a few times to chase away the remnants of sleep still clinging heavily to my droopy eyelids, while Skye carefully shifted her position so that she was sitting instead next to me on the bed. Gradually, I began to discern the presence of others standing all around. After several seconds and some effort on my part, I was able to take in the fear reflected in Penny’s eyes, the concerned expression on Que and Henri, as well as looks of dismay and consternation on Ari and Qit. “Wh-what happened?” I asked woozily, my lips feeling numb and the skin on my cheeks still stinging with pain. I heard Penny sigh with relief. “You must have had the intercom switched on,” she explained in a rush, wheezing slightly as if out of breath. “And pressed the panic button, too. All of us heard this,” here she gave a brief shiver, ”I don’t know, other-worldly bloodcurdling scream, and we all jumped out of bed in a jiff and rushed here.” At the same time, Que was patting my hand coolly and saying comfortingly, “It’s OK, you know. We’re here beside you.” As if I wasn’t aware of that. At the same moment, Skye was grabbing me by the shoulder and asking insistently, “What was it? Tell me, was it a dream? You must tell me, it’s imperative for you to do so.” “Dream?” I asked her back, slowly and listlessly, rubbing my throbbing cheeks. “I don’t remember any dream. Why did you have to hit me so hard?” “You must have been dreaming,” Penny decided. “Why else would you be trying to choke the life out of Skye?” “What?” I asked back incredulously, only then taking in the red welts around Skye’s neck. “Did I really do that?” The others were silent on this one. Stifling a yawn, I decided to try asking something else. ”I wonder what time it is now?” I glanced at the alarm clock on the bedside table and saw that it was 5 a.m. At first I thought I was able to read the clock’s hands because they had been painted in luminescent paint, but then I realized the room was bathed in strong light, with all the lamps in the room switched on to the maximum. “Qit,” Skye turned to look at the one directly beside her and asked in a soft voice, ”Could you kindly go downstairs and get her some honeyed drink, please?” Qit hesitated for a mere second before nodding and hurrying out the door. He came back shortly with the requested beverage, which Skye coaxed me to drink, propping me up to a straighter sitting position. I languidly brought the glass up to my lips and took slow sips. “How do you feel now?” she inquired as I handed back the empty glass to her. Only then did I notice her hands trembling slightly. “Better?” “OK, I guess,” I replied, wondering why they seemed gravely concerned over nothing. “Am I supposed to feel any different or something? I just feel slightly lethargic, that’s all.” I saw them exchanging worried looks, and this made me worry, too. Finally, Skye threw her arms around a surprised me, and it struck me that she did this more out of the need to comfort herself rather than to comfort me. “Henri,” this time she turned to speak to Henri. “Somehow I don’t think we should leave her alone till dawn. What do you think?” The ends of his lips curved upward in a slow smile as he answered, “I’ll stay here and keep her company, if that’s what you want. I promise I won’t allow her to go back to sleep.” “What do you mean – you won’t allow me to sleep?” I retorted indignantly. “Do you know what time it is? Do you realize I’ve only slept for two hours?” Despite me fuming there, Skye reached over and planted a soft kiss on my slowly cooling cheek. “Nobody wants to have their beauty sleep destroyed twice because of your screams and shrieks,” joked Henri with folded arms. “For the last time, I did not scream! I did not shriek!” I yelled back at him. Henri merely chuckled and scoffed at me, and I pretended to grab a pillow to throw at him while Skye laughed out, her sweet ringing laughter dissipating any residual feelings of fear and anxiety still left all around the room. She walked around to the other side of the bed and began to determinedly steer a reluctant Que toward the door. “C’mon, guys,” she called out to the others to follow her and Que’s lead. “Let’s give her some breathing space, shall we? It’s hard enough contending with memories triggered by familiar surroundings. Let’s not make her adjustment even more difficult.” And with that, she was gone, the others with her. I was surprised that when Qit gently closed the door behind him, they had all left Henri behind. 5) The Revelation Even now as I sat there watching him in silence, he was striding toward the windows and throwing the curtains aside and flinging the windows open. “Just letting some fresh air come in,” he explained, sauntering up to me with an apologetic smile. True, there was a damp pre-dawn breeze breathing in gently, bringing with it the mixture of night and early morning sounds of crickets, chirping birds and rustling leaves. “Just out of curiosity,” I asked, somewhat cautiously. “Why did the others go?” “You mean,” re-phrased Henri. “Why did the others leave us here alone? Is that what you mean?” I merely stared at him in answer, not sure whether I should nod my head at his candidness. “Relax,” he sighed, then gave me a sincere and kind smile. “There’s no need to worry. I guess you must have forgotten – the others are used to it by now, leaving us like this. Before you went and hit your head, we were best pals, you know.” “B-best pals?” I stammered, revealing that I had indeed no recollection of the exact nature of our relationship. “The bestest of friends,” he acknowledged, taking hold of my right hand and giving it a slight kiss. For a few moments there was complete silence between us, with me staring off into space, my thoughts still muddled, still attempting to digest the information he had just given, and with him straining to pull the king bench to my side, finally plopping down on it while puffing and heaving away. At first I didn’t feel much like talking, preferring instead to fall back onto the plump pillow with hands grasped at the back of my head, staring up at the ceiling, letting my thoughts drift. But feeling his intense scrutiny boring into me, I had to abandon my mental wanderings and return his gaze. We spent a few moments like that, him challenging me with his slight frown, and I him with my stare. He finally broke the ice by abruptly standing up and reaching for my temples. I automatically jumped and shot my arms up to shield my head in defensive reflex. “Hey, now,” he told me exasperatedly. “I just wanted to massage your temples for a while. Thought it’d help de-stress you.” “Oh,” I said, lowering my arms, feeling suddenly foolish, unable to fathom the reason for my naturally defensive gesture just now. “What were you thinking?” Henri scolded me, his fingertips meeting my temples and beginning to massage in a circular motion. “Did you actually think I was going to hurt you or something?” I shut my eyes and ignored his question, letting his hand do its magic. His cool dextrous fingers calmed and soothed the incessant throbbing in my temples. “I have something to admit,” he finally said. I opened my eyes wide, suddenly aware that I had been on the verge of dozing off. “I meant to find out about your dream. Please, Azure, try to remember now that you’re in a calmer state of mind. Skye wasn’t exaggerating: your health and state of mind is very important to us. Please.” I looked into his imploring eyes and couldn’t help feeling sorry for him. “Oh, OK,” I said, humoring him. “If it’s so vital to you.” I didn’t truly understand the urgency of the matter but was willing to attempt it. I didn’t feel like disappointing him. I squeezed my eyes tight, trying to remember. Was I really dreaming? If yes, what had it been? “I remember … ”I began, then faltered, my eyebrows knotted with effort while I tried my best to recall the details. “Darkness.” I shook my head. “That’s all.” “Please, Azure,” Henri insisted, and I was suddenly aware that he was sitting by my side on the bed. “Try harder.” “I already did,” I retorted. “Don’t you believe me?” “Of course I do,” he cooed. His eyes had a strange gleam in it. All of a sudden I had a feeling he, as well as the others, knew something about me that they were not letting on. “It’s just that I believe there is more to it than just plain darkness.” “You’re right,” I finally sighed resignedly. “I’ll give it another shot.” I shut my eyes and tried to concentrate, but nothing came to mind. I opened my eyes and shrugged. “Sorry, Hen. I just can’t.” “Well, have it your way, then,” he said, stifling a yawn. Evidently, he was as sleepy as I was but was fighting hard not to show it. He stood up and gave himself a good stretch. “Look, I’ve gotta go take a leak. You’re gonna be OK?” I nodded tiredly, a little amused at his blunt choice of words, and he scampered off toward the toilet. With him gone, I closed my eyes again, trying harder to remember. There was darkness, that was how it started, I recalled. Not just any sort of darkness, it was eternal and menacing, and solid as if it was a ravenous being freed after aeons of imprisonment, and you could just imagine its unholy desire to pounce on you and devour you whole … “Azure,” a gentle voice made the memory dissipate. “Wake up, Azure.” I awoke in a stupor, with Henri’s hands on my shoulders, lightly shaking me. “Hen,” I managed to rasp. “What happened?” “I leave you for a moment and this is what happens,” he nagged good-naturedly, but his countenance could not disguise his concern. “B-but what actually happened?” I asked, slowly sitting up. “I - I don’t remember.” “Figures,” he groaned, rolling his eyes. Then he peered deep into my eyes, as if searching for something, his face intense. “I hope you understand now why the others left you in my care.” “No,” I shot back. “I don’t understand.” “Well, I’ll try my very best to explain, then,” promised Henri. “When I came back, I found you deep asleep. How did I know that? Well, your usual heavy snoring and deep breathing was hard not to notice. But despite that, you also seemed to be reciting some archaic Veleri verses that frankly made my skin crawl. Look.” He showed me his right arm and I could see the hairs standing on end. Noticing my frightened look, he typically tried to lighten things up with a bad but well-meaning joke. “I think if I hadn’t woken you up in time, you might have probably succumbed to that bloodcurdling scream you demonstrated earlier on tonight.” “But what are Vele-what verses?” I asked back, panic rising in my eyes. I didn’t like this one bit. Nope, I didn’t like this at all. “Oh, Azure,” he gave a deep sigh and hung his head down with arms held straight and hands clasped in front of him, as if trying to make up his mind about something. Finally he looked up and there was a set look on his face. “Look, the others aren’t gonna like it that I’ve told you this, but it’s high time you knew.” Slowly, he pulled up his left sleeve and exposed flesh with scrawls that first appeared to be made by a dagger. Upon closer inspection, it seemed more like an intricate pattern and was ornate, detailed and light brown in color. I couldn’t make head or tail of it. “What’s that supposed to be?” I asked curiously. “This,” he answered patiently, “means that I am the official person in charge of everything light around here.” “Light?” I asked back. “As in ‘feather-light’? As in ‘sunlight’? As in Henri Lait?” “The second one rings closest to the truth,” he answered. “Although I have to add that my family name having a similar sound seems to be more coincidental than not.” “But what does it all mean?” I implored. “Please tell me, Hen.” “It’s like this,” he started, then paused for a while as if remembering something. “A long time ago, there had been a global committee made up mostly of Vieran and Kieran monks. The committee was set up with the good intention of governing over tedious global issues. But things increasingly got out of hand, and in the end they decided to nominate two persons, where one should undertake the jurisdiction of light, and the other, darkness.” “As in the fight of light and darkness,” I intoned wisely. “Exactly,” replied Henri. “At first, the two nominees were good friends. You have to understand that being a master of darkness doesn’t necessarily mean the person is evil, and vice versa. But as my mother often said, the path to hell is paved with good intentions. In the end, the Dark Guy was swayed by the compelling dark side, and that was how the battle of good versus evil started. And that also was how the cycle stayed, until now. Veleri verses are used to contain or to summon evil. “Azure,” murmured Henri quietly. “You’ve got to know that we are now the current modern-day bearers of such practices.” “Huh?” My head was spinning. “What do you mean?” He pointed toward my left shoulder and gestured that I should do the same as he did before. Slowly I pushed my sleeve up and peered at my shoulder the best I could without dislocating my neck. I determined there was nothing there on the skin – if that was the motive of this exercise – and looked up in surprise at Henri’s stumped look as he sat down dazedly on the bench. “I should’ve checked sooner,” he was mumbling. “We all assumed everything would be all right, we just never imagined it’d be this way.” “What is it?” I asked worriedly. “Were you expecting a similar tattoo on my shoulder or something?” “Yes,” he said, forehead wrinkled with apprehension. He jumped to his feet and began to pace the floor– to and fro, to and fro. “It had always been there before.” “Perhaps it had been removed,” I voiced out my opinion. “Evidently,” he determined. “But it’s more likely to have reverted to an invisible state. If it were forcefully removed from you in its entirety, a new bearer would have been chosen, and I’d have known about it. That’s how the system works.” “Wait a minute,” I said, my brain finally catching up. “Are you hinting that I am the Bearer of Darkness?” He stopped his pacing to look at me and said calmly, “I’m not hinting – I’m telling you.” It was like time stood still for a while there – I swear. I kept gaping at him like a goldfish, all the time reaching out for help, and a lot of things clicked into place all at once. I remembered the dream – walking alone in a landscape of wide open space, more like a desert or a plain, alone in the darkness, alone in the night. I was traveling, my forgotten destination blazing like a fire in my mind, a sharp weapon in my hand ready to be used either for defense or offense. But something came hurtling out of the stillness and darkness of the night. Its dark shape loomed over me and overpowered me. The searing pain, the cuts and bruises, opened gashes and bleeding wounds, scalded skin and torn tissues, all came back to me with singular clarity and was abruptly washed away in a flood of red-tinged memory of years gone by, of steps taken and retraced, of mistakes done and regretted. In the dream, I had my past back in the palm of both hands, and my future, clear as the sky on an unclouded day, was a straight trail in front of me. In the dream I knew who I was, my purpose for being there and where my destiny would lead me. Even in the dream, I could feel hot tears slide down my cheeks onto the pillow, I could feel my body toss and turn as the pain inflicted upon me increased in volume, until I felt that I had screamed Enough! Enough! at the top of my lungs until my voice was hoarse, though I knew in actual life no audible words escaped my sleeping mouth. In the end, fatigued and exhausted, I fought no more but let the darkness envelop me in a cold, final embrace, in whose arms I knew I’d never set eyes on the radiant rays of the sun again. As I begun to lose consciousness, a feeling of dread crept inside, turning me numb and void of feelings. I was given new eyes with which to view the world in a kaleidoscope of bleakness and icy wintry night. I was aware of the shift in my future, and where the trail was sunny, clear and straight before, the pathway was now obscure, long and winding with a myriad of dark heavy clouds accentuating the way. But the final destination where the path led to was clear to the eyes: the edge of a precipice that promised eternal suffering and somewhat absolute damnation of the self, spirit and body. It wasn’t life being offered to me. It was the promise of imminent death. I let out a scream of anguish, of hopes dashed against rocks under the precipice below, of golden opportunities wasted and taken away, of the being I had been forced to become. There had been no way out, there would never be any way out. The scream reverberated through my brain and that was when I had woken up to see Skye’s ashen white face. “That was it?” Henri asked, seeking confirmation. He passed me a terry towel he had taken from the bathroom drawers. I took it, suddenly aware that I was drenched in perspiration. “More or less,” I replied, wiping my face with the towel. “Yeah.” “Do you understand it?” there was deliberation in his voice. “Well,” I attempted to answer, trying to recall fragments of memories. “I did, in the dream. But now that I’m awake, I’ve forgotten.” “It was who you were,” clarified Henri with no tinge of surprise in his voice. “Who you once were before you became the Dark Overlord.” “Is that my official designation?” I asked interestedly. He stared at me before replying, “No, but it’s what some parties term you. Your official designation where such things are concerned is the Bearer of Darkness.” “Doesn’t sound catchy, does it?” I asked cheekily, slowly feeling the lethargy melt away with every passing moment. “Why not Princess of Darkness? That one sounds sexier.” ”Well,” Henri seemed to think the matter over. “People do sometimes refer to you as that. But you have to bear in mind that the Bearer of Darkness is the historically and politically correct term by which to address one such as you. That has been the practice for centuries.” “So does that make you the Bearer of Light then?” I questioned him back. “It does,” he responded. “And, what do I do?” I inquired. “Do I answer to anybody?” “Well,” he began, rubbing his chin thoughtfully. “Theoretically, we both answer to the inner circle of the Global Committee. Who it consists of, even I’m not sure. But since we’re both official global Fighters, and answer to the same Global Committee anyway, it doesn’t really matter much. To me, the inner and outer circles are one and the same.” “Whoa,” I yelled, surprised. “What do you mean, we’re Fighters?” “Well, how do you think we could afford all these simple luxuries, huh?” he asked back in a cross voice, though sympathy burnished in his somewhat turquoise-colored eyes. “Granted, this mansion and piece of land fell plop onto Skye’s lap, and most expenses of running this place comes from allowances the government has bequest upon us, but how do you justify your possessions? Don’t you ever wonder how you supported yourself?” “You know,” I answered enthusiastically. “That was the exact same question I had meant to ask you. So, just what is it do we do for a living?” “I told you,” Henri answered exasperatedly. “We are all Fighters. Yes, all of us – Skye, Penny, Que, Qit and Ari, too. But you – you’ve been put on medical leave until at least another fortnight. That’s one of the reasons why we had to put you in a semi-government hospital, with all the lousy service and staff. Because our superiors requested specifically for your medical leave certificate to be issued by a government hospital, you see. Thank goodness the room you got at least wasn’t so bad. Well, anyway, being Fighters and having our base here in Melize technically makes us Melizian government servants. Even though some of us weren’t born here, we automatically received Melizian nationality once we entered the Fighter program. Though, from time to time, we’re given overseas assignments that require us to be under the jurisdiction of other countries, too.” “How much exactly are we paid?” I asked hopefully, eyes shining bright. “Well, being government servants, we’re not paid all that much,” he said, noticing my crestfallen face. “But we usually make quite a tidy sum from the insurance, perks and rewards. In fact, most of us had gotten into the habit of investing in more stable and beneficial assets like property and such, so there’s never the fear of going broke.” “But how much exactly?” I insisted. “For someone fresh out of hospital, you sure ask a lot of questions,” he laughed, giving me a light playful punch on the arm. “But seriously, I can’t say for sure. All of us are paid differently, depending on seniority and capability. Besides, amount of rewards given for every assignment differs greatly, too, depending on your suitability to the task given and the difficulty level of the task.” “So who’s the senior?” I asked, a guess already forming in my mind. “Well,” Henri thought it over before answering. “That’d be Skye. She was the first to be discovered and the first member of the Fighters.” I had thought so, noticing how the others seemed used to follow her directions like clockwork. “The next one would be Qit, then Que, then Penny and Ari.” “How about me and you?” I inquired. “Well, you arrived here at the mansion after Ari did, I think. And some time later, you dragged me in,” he gave me a kind smile. “I was serving at the Ministry of Defense, in charge of administration, when you walked in one day and we struck up our friendship. Later on, when Skye stepped down and handed over the Bearer of Light duties to me, you practically forced me to ask for a transfer to join you and the others in the Mansion, and the job was clinched.” “Wait a minute,” I remarked, surprised. “Slow down, slow down. Do you mean to say that Skye, my ‘twin’ Skye, was the Bearer of Light before you?” “Yes,” he seemed amazed that I didn’t know this. “Didn’t I mention it to you before?” “You dodo!” I screamed at him and jestingly flung a pillow which he caught neatly in both hands. “You never even mentioned my career while I was in the hospital! What gives you the idea that you had told me about Skye being Bearer of Light?” “OK, sorry for overlooking that,” he apologized. “Yes, your ‘twin’ Skye was my predecessor.” “When did this happen?” I asked again. “Which part?” he questioned back. “Oh – you mean, all of it. Well, Skye had been having difficulties right about the time you went into darkness – hush, now, let me finish my tale first … ” 6) Henri Answers Some Interesting Questions It seemed that Skye had come to live in Cock-a-Doodle Mansion at the tender age of 12. An orphan since 8, she had the highest average score in a nation-wide school Compulsory Test which among other things analyzed the child’s intellectual and psychological profile and whose sole purpose was to identify and select a special few for the newly-formed Fighter Group Program, also known as the FGP. She was at the time the only one selected for training as a Fighter and had some mixed feelings about leaving the orphanage and her old friends for the wondrous Cock-a-Doodle Mansion, then named Marcox Mansion. The mansion had actually belonged to a white-haired elderly gentleman known by the name of Dr. Marcox. Being head of the FGP, he was a kind old man and had donated his mansion and its grounds to be used as the future headquarters of those who would be called the Fighters. In the mansion, Skye, as the others after her, was trained in many areas. Her Bearer of Light powers, given to her at birth, was discovered and her status recognized. She studied a variety of subjects from archery to swimming, defense training to gymnastics, diplomacy to politics, mastering eight main international languages to learning Physics and Mathematics. Being a quick learner, she naturally excelled in almost everything taught to her. Skye had never been openly verbal about it, but there had been enough evidence to point that the good doctor and benefactor had, er, liked his prized student a little too much, more perhaps than in the professional sense. It was at about this time also that Qit made his appearance at the mansion. He had been from neighboring war-torn Heredelich and being of the Harqis royal blood, he had escaped almost inevitable death and had sought refuge in Melize. When Heredelich finally fell to the opportunistic Soulfan empire, Harqis who had passed the Compulsory Test with excellent results, was given refuge in Cock-a-Doodle Mansion. It had been troubling times. At first, Qit had serious problems fitting in and his clashes with Skye had been more war-like than battle-like. But little by little, Skye won him over as comrade and companion, and he finally opened up enough to trust and even like her. Yet, peace in the mansion was not for long, because there were only few things you could hide from occupants of the same residence. When Qit found out that the kind Dr. Marcox was only a facade and that the latter’s personal agenda included controlling Skye to attend to his every whim and fancy, all hell went loose. There had been a confrontation, and then a scuffle, during which process Dr. Marcox fell off the second-floor landing onto the ground floor below and broke his neck. During the disagreement, too, a fire mysteriously broke out and burned the mansion down. The cause of the fire was never determined, and the government did its best to hush things up. Qit was never reprimanded for his role in the fight because several support employees testified as witnesses and determined that they had seen the doctor fall to his doom on his own accord. Once the autopsy was done on Dr. Marcox’s charred remains and it was concluded that his cause of death was a broken neck and that his death was deemed accidental, even Qit’s staunchest accusers kept silent and conveniently forgot their accusations. Dr. Marcox had also had his will and testament prepared prior to that. Upon his death, it was discovered that he had given full ownership of the place and everything that came with it to Skye. The news shocked Qit and shattered Skye who had been planning to run and escape the shadow of the doctor. With Dr. Marcox’s demise, both were considered wards of the state until the legal age of 18 and were allowed to stay in the mansion grounds. The two, plus a handful of butlers, cooks, maids, assistants, chauffeurs and security officers, had to make do with living in the outdoors for a while. The womenfolk stayed in makeshift rooms in the huge car garage using hung bed sheets as walls while the men opted to live in tents salvaged from the old mansion. All this happened while construction, using the government’s allocated funds, of the new mansion building was carried out. It was about then, too, that Que made his first appearance. He had approached a village clinic near the Heredelich-Melize border to seek help for his ailing ‘father’. By the time he had led the village doctor to the cave deep in the jungle where his old and feeble ‘father’ had brought him up, it was already too late. The man had passed away peacefully in his sleep due to natural causes. Heartbroken Que was then sent to live in the village orphanage. Upon passing the Compulsory Test with flying colors, he was quickly whisked off to the Fighters’ headquarters in Kismet Kesuma. He once told me how, when he arrived, it was raining heavily. He had been soaked right to the skin, a torn knapsack flung over one bony shoulder bearing all the possessions he had left in this world. Upon reaching the front door, alone and shivering in the cold, he received a warm welcome from the hospitable hostess Skye and the haughty cold-shoulder treatment by the sullen Qit, who grew even more irritable once he found out he was going to share his two-man tent with Que. The awkward arrangement fortunately was not fixed for long. Once the first phase of the building was completed about two weeks later, and upon the government’s request, Skye had given the mansion its funny name, then they all happily moved in to live in their individual rooms. It seemed that perceptive Skye had sensed some kind of kinship between Qit and Que way before they discovered it themselves because during those days, she had gone all out in trying to reconcile the two and bring them closer together. But the truce between the two twins was never long as Qit always flew into a rage whenever he saw Skye being nice to Que and vice versa. In the end, Skye had to contend with the difficult task of having both Qit and Que around while ensuring that both received equal attention and that she was never caught with only one of them by her side. This managed to make the rivalry less pronounced. By this time, Que had found out that his family name was Harqis, same as Qit’s. But somehow, the two never thought much of it. Que had been brought up answering only to the name Que, and that was it. His ‘father’ had perhaps wanted to protect and spare him further pain by neglecting to tell him his true parentage. It was the police who found out this little piece of information when they rummaged through the old hermit’s belongings which Que himself, if left on his own, would never have dreamed of touching. Later on, when the government had requested them to undergo DNA testing, among other things, and the twins’ familial relationship was evident, the news did not come as a shocking revelation, except perhaps to Qit and Que themselves. The precise tests done also indicated that Qit was older than Que by about half an hour, and it was the ultimate necessary ingredient to open the twins’ eyes and allow them to reconcile their past and slowly but surely form a close bond. Penny, on the other hand, had been an orphan for as long as she could remember. She lived with her uncle, an internationally-famous investigator who was only known as G. Even Penny herself was reluctant to mention her real family name, preferring instead to go by the name of Penelope G. Even to this day, she would go visit her favorite uncle whenever he was home and whenever she was free. He, in turn, would also return the favor by dropping by during his spare time. The other three, not having uncles of their own, often treated Uncle G. as if he was their uncle, too, and the kind bachelor investigator never seemed to mind. Penny had excellent results for her Compulsory Test, and had been shortlisted to join the FGP that January when she turned 13. Her arrival in the Mansion was like a breath of fresh air to Skye, who so far had no girl her age to talk to. Besides, the twins, who did not have other suitable female counterparts to lavish their attention on, had often doted on her to the point of suffocation. So it made things easier for her when pretty and flirtatious Penny joined the gang and helped ease her burden of having to contend with the early-adolescent boys constantly vying for her attention. In short time, Skye and Penny had become inseparable. Not long afterward, Ari had been reprimanded by the police and sent to a school for juvenile offenders. He … “But, wait!” I had cried out, halting Henri’s narration. “I remember now! Ari didn’t come and join us back then – he only joined us when we were about 16 or so! It was I who came and joined them back then.” “So, do you remember how it was back then?” Henri had excitedly asked while I nodded in affirmation. “Bits and pieces, though,” I elaborated. “A little obscure here and there. But otherwise, I’m fine.” So I told him what I remembered: I was 13 years old, same as the others back then. It had been a glorious sunny day back then when I was sent to Cock-a-Doodle Mansion, much like the day I left the hospital. Earlier on, there had been an ethnic cleansing back in my backwoods town of Kirare Lipure, East Banks, in the southern provinces of the Mucia Pasifika region. When I arrived at the temporary refugee camp near the Melizian borders and about three-day’s journey-by-foot away, the volunteers found me swooning about and took me inside the multipurpose hall to attend to medically. They discovered me fatigued and dehydrated, dazed and confused, similar to when I had awoken from my coma in the hospital. I wasn’t able to supply much information, didn’t know my own name even, and they were the ones who gave me the name Azure Blue, due to the dress I was wearing. They determined that I was an Eastern Kili girl in her early teens and that I had blocked out my memory due to some enigmatic trauma. Though injured, no evidence of sexual abuse was detected. Not knowing what to do, they finally sent me along with some other children to an orphanage in a Melizian neighboring town called Lipur Lalu. I remember having to sit for the same Compulsory Test and later, numbly receiving congratulations and the news that I had been selected to join the FGP. I then received by mail some money and a train ticket to Ismet Kelsom, a sleepy town just north of the border of the Melizian capital city of Kismet Kesuma. I found out later that the former was much closer to the mansion than the station in Kismet Kesuma was, by way of a back road. I recalled that not many passengers alighted from the train at the small and dusty Ismet Kelsom train station. I remember noting that the station building was old and deserted, and paint peels and cracks were evident on the wooden walls. I also remember looking around, slightly overwhelmed by unfamiliar surroundings, my small suitcase swinging from my skinny arm, when I caught sight of three children about my age sitting on the wooden fence some distance away from the station building, enjoying toffee apples. All at once I knew that these were the ones who had been sent to take me to my new home. The first was a handsome dark boy with strong proud features, and who, at that particular moment, was chatting happily to the girl beside him. The girl, sitting daintily in the middle, looked pretty in pink and her shiny hair ending in soft curls bobbed up and down in agreement to something the first boy had said. The third was a slight fair-headed boy, the first fair-haired person I had ever laid eyes on, and who struck me as quiet and somewhat shy. Without warning, his eyes shot up to meet mine. He flashed a brilliant smile and began nudging the girl and pointing toward me eagerly. Noticing me, the three quickly slid off the fence to come up and greet me as well as introduce themselves. The boys shook my hand cordially, with the dark-haired boy smirking and the blond one grinning away like an idiot and removing the suitcase from my hand, while the girl gave me a warm embrace. That was when the startled boys first pointed out the similarity between us. “Why, Skye!” Qit had gasped. “She looks just like you!” “What?” Skye had asked back in disbelief, inspecting me. “You trying to pull my leg?” “No, he’s not,” Que had defended his brother. “It’s true. Really!” I also began checking out Skye, a little concerned over the thought that my looks were not unique to me. “Nah,” Skye and I both decided simultaneously. Then she burst out laughing, though I still hung on to my serious countenance. It was clear to all that we both didn’t believe the brothers. The three afterward led me to a black antique Bander car model - which reminded me of an old Western stagecoach - waiting at the parking lot with the engine running. A staid white-haired chauffeur who Skye affectionately called Uncle C. opened the front passenger door for Qit to enter, then the back passenger door for the rest of us. I noted that he had raised an eyebrow upon setting eyes on me, but no reference to Skye’s resemblance to me did he make as he remained tight-lipped throughout the journey toward my new abode. I found myself sandwiched in the back between Skye and Que. Skye and Qit had both finished their toffee apples, but Que still had some of his left. To my horror, he bashfully offered it to me. “It’s OK, Que,” Skye was telling him. Even back then she was typically sensitive of others’ true feelings. “We don’t want to upset her stomach after her long journey now, do we? And besides, it doesn’t hurt to let her build up an appetite. I bet Cook Ada has prepared some tasty treats for us!” “Yum, yum,” Qitler had added. “Lip-smacking mouth-watering munchies!” “I can’t wait,” the beaming Que then echoed his brother’s sentiments. I somehow found it easy to fit in. Skye quickly became close to me, although the reason was not very clear to me. Penny had at first been rather annoyed at having me ‘steal’ her best friend away from her, then indifferent to it all, but since I knew I had done nothing wrong, I just ignored her initial cold welcome. Even back then, I used to enjoy being on my own rather than join the others’ incessant tirade of teenage interests. Skye on the other hand was more social than me, but her irritating flawlessness sometimes made her stand out a little too much. At times, I remember thinking how she overworked herself to be accepted, while I, being basically a loner, was ironically more easily accepted in a gathering than she did. For this very reason, I think it was Que who, tired of confusing our similar names up (Skye’s birth name was Azura and for some reason Dr. Marcox as her legal guardian had changed it), had finally nicknamed Skye the Outsider and me the Newcomer. Even to this day, we were often being referred to as such. I also remember spending countless hours learning various skills, like archery, writing, even singing and acting, some of them skills which didn’t seem necessary to me. We had private tutors coming in everyday to teach us new things, though we sometimes got to meet others our age when we had visits, camping trips or tournaments. I remember how Skye outshone us all by being adept at almost all learned skills, but we managed to surpass her in identified fields which we later specialized in, though what they were I couldn’t quite recall. Ari joined us when we were all 16. Under a newly-introduced government regulation with regards to Fighters, we all got to go to the highly-selective private Willerhomina University in the nearby Willerhomina provinces about an hour’s ride from the mansion. 7) The Grounds The buzzing of the intercom disturbed our reminiscing. All of a sudden, Qit’s booming voice squawked out at us. “Henri! Azure!” the voice growled. “You guys intend to come down or not? It’s past nine o’clock already. Breakfast’s getting cold!” Henri leaned over and replied saucily, “Yeah, and why didn’t you inform us earlier, then?” There was a slight pause, then: “We overslept.” Another pause as he allowed Henri his guffaw. An image of a sullen-faced Qit entered my mind and made me smile. “Hold on, I think Que’s heading over there to check on you guys. He’s bound to be there very soon.” All of a sudden, there was a loud knock on the bedroom door. Without waiting for an answer, Que had barged in and strode straight up to us. He pushed Henri aside and asked me whether I felt better. “Much,” I answered brightly. “And I remember quite a lot, too.” “That’s good to hear,” his glad smile appeared so genuine that I thought it made him look sweet. “Now let’s get some breakfast; I’m sure you must be famished by now. Would you like to join us downstairs, or would you prefer to have food brought up for you?” “She can make it downstairs,” Henri replied sarcastically, while at the same time I answered, “Oh, I don’t want to trouble anyone. I’ll go get ready and join you guys downstairs.” Que gave my hand a slight squeeze. “You don’t have to force yourself, you know.” I saw Henri exasperatedly turn his eyes up toward the ceiling. “Look, she won’t be forcing herself to do anything she doesn’t want to do,” he remarked a little pointedly. “Of course she’s capable of going downstairs, same as everybody else. What do you take her for?” “It’s OK, Hen,” I reassured Henri, giving him a slight pat on the back of his hand, trying to avoid a confrontation between the two. I didn’t like the look flashing in Que’s eyes. “I’m sure Que means well. Now look, maybe you guys should go first while I get ready.” “By getting ready you mean that you’re gonna take a long hot bath and come down at least half-an-hour later?” Henri queried, and I saw Que smile lopsidedly. “Uh, yes,” I answered, taken aback that he had read my mind exactly. “Hey, don’t look so surprised,” admonished Henri. “We’re used to the way your mind works. Right, Que?” “Right,” Que replied, pulling at my hand. “Now, come on! We’re ravenous! Let’s all go down before I decide to carry you there myself.” This caused me to yelp and abruptly sit up straighter. Que helped me get down from my bed while Henri passed me my crutches and dressing gown. I quickly put the latter on over my checkered pajamas, glancing at Henri’s rumpled dark ones and wondering whether he’d get it in his head to don a decent dressing gown as well, or perhaps rush to the bathroom - not to mine but to his own - to brush his teeth or something. I wasn’t partial to sharing cleansing utensils with other people. Or, wait; were all men like this, not much into oral hygiene and personal appearance? Then my eyes flit over to Que, clad in tight jeans and blue collared T-shirt and smelling of musky cologne. Well, at least this one’s an exception, and evidently had time to shower and get dressed while claiming to be very hungry. When we got down to the ground floor, everyone was already seated and I was glad to note they were all robed in dressing gowns or otherwise sleeping attire. I would have hated it had I discovered only Henri and I were the ones still inappropriately dressed. It was also quickly evident that I wasn’t the only one to notice details regarding Que and Henri. “Hey, Que,” Qit sounded surprised. “Didn’t think you had enough time to change.” “Oh, pooh,” squealed Penny while Henri stood behind her, reaching for a plate and asking her to pass the fork and spoon. “Did you remember to brush your teeth this morning, Henri?” When Henri sheepishly shook his head, she forced him to gargle using the mouthwash in the ground floor toilet first before commencing to eat. Cook Ada and her helper, a slight girl who Skye later told me was called Eva, carried the dishes to the rectangular solid oak table. The breakfast menu consisted of a long loaf of fruit and nut bread (I learned afterward this was one of Skye’s and my favorite types of grain), plain croissants (Penny’s fav), corned beef, stalks of boiled sweet corn (which, it seems, Ari loved), huge boiled potatoes (Henri appeared to prefer this the most), scrambled eggs, butter and mayonnaise (one of both twins’ staple diet). There was even a white porcelain teapot dotted with tiny buds each of coffee, tea and milk, as well as a simple stone jug of plain water. This was the first time I had had breakfast with all of them at one single table, and I was both astounded and amused by how they behaved in their natural environment. Ari kept grabbing and stuffing all kinds of food into his mouth as if there were no tomorrow, Henri was prattling on indifferently to a horrified Penny with smears of mayonnaise on his cheek and Qit, seated at one end of the long table with Que and Penny nearby on each side, claimed his chair kept rocking and was unstable, and promptly sat on the table with his feet on the chair, continuing to eat his corn in a nonchalant fashion. I think this would have continued had Skye not noticed me gaping with an uneaten piece of sandwich still on my plate. “Qit,” she snapped. “While we admire your behind, we find the view rather distracting. And Penny, why don’t you help wipe the smudge off Henri with your napkin? I don’t think he’ll be able to find it under an hour if you just keep on pointing it out to him. And Ari – table manners, please.” All mentioned kept quiet, suddenly aware of my presence, and sheepishly reverted to a more appropriate manner. I was somewhat embarrassed that Skye was making a big fuss of me being home, and that the others were clearly not comfortable with my presence in the house after my long disappearance yet. But all was soon forgotten as we resumed eating, with the noisy non-stop criss-crossing conversations flowing as usual. Though tasty, I didn’t have the appetite to eat much, yet I still hung around to listen to the discussions, ranging everything from going shopping with one’s new beau (Penny) to life after death (Henri). “You sure don’t eat much,” commented an uncharacteristically subdued Que while standing up and extending a hand for my half-empty plate to take to the kitchen. All around, the conversations started to dissipate. I heard Ari belch and witnessed Qit rubbing his full tummy. “How’re you gonna get better if you don’t eat?” “In time,” I looked up at him and smiled. “It’s the other way around actually – I’ll get better and soon I’ll be eating a whole lot more!” “What’s our plan today?” Skye asked while Que continued clearing the table with Penny and Henri. “Today is Sunday, so we’re all free. Are you up to it?” “Up to it to do what?” I countered back, slowly sipping my lukewarm coffee. “Up to it to do anything that needs doing,” she replied, a warm smile playing on her lips. “Oh, say, unpacking, going around the grounds, or anything else for that matter. And, ah-ah,” a disapproving wag of the index finger here, “you should watch your caffeine intake. You know it will give you a headache afterward.” “Really?” I asked, thankful for this forgotten information, even though she was beginning to get on my nerves with her nanny routine. No wonder that brute Dr. Ryan had forbidden me from drinking caffeine – this must have been the reason. At least, I can’t think of anything else. “I’ll be careful next time. Thanks.” “You might watch it, ‘cuz if you don’t get a headache, you’re gonna be a little tipsy,” added Henri, balancing a stack of plates while Penny opened the kitchen door for him and Que sailed through ahead. “You’re making it sound like some sort of alcoholic beverage,” I complained unbelievingly, yet at the same time processing the data. “You sure you’re not kidding?” Ari chortled and challenged with a glint in his eyes, “Why don’t you try and see what happens? I bet a lot of us are eager to see what happens, too.” “No, thank you,” I turned down his dare, unsure of how I would actually react under the influence of caffeine. “So what’ll it be?” Skye asked again excitedly. I looked into her earnest eyes and hoped I didn’t disappoint her too much with my answer. “Well, I answered slowly, “if it’s all the same to you, I’d rather spend the day alone. If that’s, you know, alright with you.” I felt a pang of pity as I watched her face fall. But she quickly recovered and beamed at me. “It’s your choice, you know,” she told me. “Just remember we’re around in case you need help.” “That’s OK,” Que suddenly said, sauntering up and snaking an arm around me. But he quickly dropped his arm before I could shrug him off. “’Cuz I’ll be with her the whole day today.” Skye shot Qit a look that clearly said Help! You’d better get your kooky brother to his senses quick! Getting the message, Qit went up to Que and took his hand. “You know we’re quite busy today,” he reminded his brother gently. “Why don’t we practice some more shots? The basketball tournament is after all tomorrow.” Que looked peevish but did not say a word. Instead, he allowed Qit to lead him out the door. “Look,” suggested Henri with a yawn while stretching his arms. “Why don’t we leave you to your own sweet time while we go do our things, and if you need us, just holler. Or use the phone or something. I think they’ve put the extension list beside yours, too.” “I’ll go check,” I promised while Skye grinned like a Cheshire cat, probably thinking it was a great idea. “I’ll brief you on the status of your assets later, too,” promised Skye. “When we have more time.” “Sure, I’ve almost forgotten that one,” I admitted. So while the twin brothers went outside to go play in the basketball court, Skye, Penny, Ari and Henri slowly trudged up the stairs, keeping time with me on my stair-lift. Everybody then went to his or her room and I suddenly found myself alone in mine. I took the opportunity to have a leisurely soak in the tub then went to inspect my range of clothing in the closet. I’ve forgotten I had this many clothes, from cute anoraks and trendy fur coats to exquisite evening gowns and sexy chemises. I frowned at the designer labels in my hands. Was I really into such expensive stuff? I couldn’t imagine being comfortable in them. At last, I came upon an assortment of faded jeans, multi-colored multi-slogan T-shirts and oversized shirts at the very back. I donned on a pair of cut-off jeans and a white denim men’s shirt, instantaneously feeling relaxed and more at home. Dressing done, I then reluctantly went to unpack my bags. Oh, well, I thought, sinking down in front of the suitcases which Qit and Ari left inside the closet. Better start now and get it over and done with. I gingerly unzipped the suitcase one by one, rummaging through my stuff and trying to make up my mind on which thing was supposed to go where. It took me almost an hour to decide and another two to store the contents to appropriate places, plus several breaks in between which I spent sprawled exhaustedly on my back on the floor. I was thankful the others hadn’t pressured me to allow them to help, otherwise I’d have been deadlocked resolving how to organize my possessions properly. Mission accomplished, I pushed the suitcases into a corner in the closet, fell onto the bed with a long sigh and closed my eyes. I think I had only dozed off for a mere minute before Henri’s voice boomed from the intercom and made me jump with eyes opened wide. “Hey, Azure,” he said gleefully. “Thought I’d use the intercom so you wouldn’t have to get up just to get to the phone.” “What is it this time?” I asked crankily, shutting my eyes again. He must’ve detected the sleepiness in my voice because he said, “Wakey, wakey. Time for lunchey. It’s past one o’clock already.” “Get your butt down here now!” I heard Ari roar from somewhere behind him, then heard the sound of scampering, and Qit’s thoughtful voice rang out. “You OK there?” he queried. “Can you come down on your own? We can go get you if you need us.” “Nah,” I replied, rubbing the sleep off my eyes. “It’s just that the intercom’s so loud it’s making my head buzz. Don’t worry, I’ll come down soon. Wait for me, everyone.” I made my way down slowly, using the stair-lift with the crutches resting on my lap. When I reached the dining room, I saw that everybody was seated all around, talking animatedly to one another. Food had been prepared, too, and consisted of still-steaming ghee rice and some side dishes which included fried cashew nuts, raisins and mint sauce. I smiled appreciatively as I inhaled the aroma of roasted chicken and beef curry. “Come sit here,” gestured Skye, patting the seat beside her. I leaned the crutches against the nearby wall and slowly sat down onto the cushioned oak wood seat. I unexpectedly found myself same as this morning, sitting between Skye and Que. What was this? I wondered as a smiling Que unfurled my napkin and helped put it on my lap. Were seat arrangements fixed? I had no idea but was willing to play along if this was the custom. Opposite me, Henri, flanked by Penny and Ari, winked at me and began to heap a pile of rice onto reluctant Penny’s plate. Qit, seated at one end of the table, passed Que my plate, and Que began to follow Henri’s example and even included portions of side dishes atop it before passing the plate on to me. Comfortable with common Melizian practice, I washed my hands from a water bowl Que passed to me and like Skye, Qit, Que and Ari, commenced to eat using my hands. It was an excellent lunch. I found out that it was customary for Ari to belch his approval after a satisfying meal, although Penny wrinkled her nose in disapproval each time he did that. “Last I checked, I thought I saw some nice dresses in your closet,” commented Que, throwing an impish lopsided grin my way. “How come you’re not wearing any?” I felt my cheeks burn and was suddenly tongue-tied, not knowing what to answer. “Can’t you see she’s comfortable enough as she is,” chided Henri from across the table. “Stop bullying her, Que.” “Just kidding,” whispered Que apologetically as he took my empty white rose-patterned plate and started clearing the table with Henri and Penny. I smiled back at him to show that no offense was taken. “So,” I turned to meet Skye’s brilliant doe eyes, eager to make up for this morning’s episode. “What do you think we should do after this? Any plans? I’ve already done my unpacking.” “Gee, I’m not sure,” Skye replied. “Henri suggested giving you a tour of the grounds. But what I had in mind was more specific, something like a trip to the stables.” “Stables?” I sputtered, fear suddenly looming out of nowhere. It would have sunk me to my knees had I not been sitting down. “Whatever for?” “I don’t think you’ve been properly acquainted to all your possessions yet,” came the coy answer. “I just thought it high time you were.” “She means to show you Midnight,” Penny observed and shuddered as she carried a stack of plates toward the kitchen behind Que’s disappearing back. “I’d watch out, if I were you. That thing’s pure evil.” I quickly turned to look pleadingly at Henri for support but he had conveniently turned his back on me and was heading toward the kitchen behind Penny. 8) The Horse After some conversation and glasses of lemonade, Skye led me outside using the back door located behind the staircase. There was a trail paved with cobblestones leading deep into the shade of the giant leafy trees. After convincing Skye that I had no problem keeping up with her, we made our way slowly down the lane. On our way, we passed by the lake and I spied several ducks swimming near the bait at the end of a fishing rod. The person holding the rod was in fact Ari with a wide-brimmed straw hat perched on his head, nodding off to sleep in his shady spot under the trees, protected from the warm afternoon sun. Next, we passed by a playground and the games courts. Skye went to say hello to Qit, Que and Henri who were playing a fast and intense game of basketball. They stopped playing and walked across the cement-floored basketball court to come and greet us, wiping off beads of perspiration from their brows. “Where are you headed?” Qit inquired from Skye then tipping his near-empty drink bottle above his mouth and allowing the last few drops to trickle down his throat. “Off to re-introduce her to Midnight, huh?” rasped Henri, panting with his back slightly bowed and his palms resting upon his knees. “So I heard.” “Really?” Que seemed astonished to hear this. I thought he looked slightly disturbed at this idea. He frowned at Skye and pointed toward me. “You sure she’s ready for this? She just got out of hospital, you know.” “I know,” Skye replied patiently. “And give her some credit, Que. She’s tougher than she looks. She can handle it.” Tougher than I look? I thought in dismay. What exactly do I look like to them – a weakling? Que stared at me thoughtfully with his hands on his hips, then surprised me by reaching out suddenly and giving my lower lip a tweak. “Oh, you look so-o cute when you do that face! Now, don’t be afraid, Azure. I know Midnight’s a handful these days but he’ll calm down once he sees you again. I bet he’s been missing you, too, poor chap. Wish I could go with you, though.” “No,” both Henri and Qit cried out vehemently. “Besides,” Qit reminded Que. “There’s the game to think of tomorrow.” “Yeah, that’s right,” Que sighed resignedly. “Come by and cheer for us tomorrow, Azure. I – we’d really like that.” I turned to look at Skye, who nodded her approval. I licked the salty taste off my lip then answered, “Sure I’ll go – if somebody’s willing to take me.” “That’d be me,” offered Henri, straightening up. “I won’t be joining them tomorrow. It’ll only be Que and Qit, plus some feds.” “Alright then,” agreed Que as Qit pulled at his hand, indicating that he wanted to resume the game. Que hollered over his shoulder as he allowed his brother to lead him toward the ball in the center of the court. “We’ll be expecting you!” Finally, Skye took me to a one-and-a-half-story log building adjacent to a fenced paddock where three horses were grazing. While keeping in step with me, she told me how I got my horse. “It was the most surprising thing, really,” she was telling me. “I think it was about a year after you first came here. You used to have these vivid nightmares back then – oh, yeah; similar to what you had last night. That’s OK – none of it’s new to us anyway. Sometimes you’d roll about and scream bloody murder, and wake us all up in the middle of the night. In the early days, I sometimes slept in your room to keep you company, but after you kept biting and clawing and kicking me, generally fighting off anyone who attempted to wake you, we decided to just let you be.” “I-I’m sorry for the troubles I’ve caused,” I stammered. I must have looked pretty embarrassed and sheepish then because she suddenly flung her arms around me and told me sincerely that everything was all right. “We simply accepted the fact that that is what you do every night,” she rationalized and referred to an ancient Melizian belief. “Maybe your spirit makes its journey every night without fail in order to seek truth and strength, and just had to encounter many obstacles in its adventures. That’s what you do. That’s why you kick and squirm so agitatedly in your sleep.” “Did I remember any of those stuff when I woke up?” I inquired, brushing off the ancient myth aside. “Sometimes you did,” answered Skye thoughtfully. “And sometimes you didn’t.” “Really?” Her curt answer made sense to me. “But usually we force you to remember things if we felt like it,” she added with a smirk. “Because we found that your dreams are somewhat insightful to our circumstances. Penny thinks you’re just holding back your memories and feigning ignorance during your waking hours, though.” “Oh,” I said, quietly pondering whether Penny was right. “I was telling you about Midnight,” Skye steered me back to the main subject of conversation. “Yes,” I prodded her. “Go on.” “Like I said,” she reminisced, her eyes shining at the memory. “It was the most amazing thing. I remember it was raining that night and about 2 or 3 a.m. I think it was – well, a few hours before dawn anyway, I was woken up when I thought I heard your cries in between claps of thunder. We used to keep the intercom in your room open in case anything happens, you know. I remember running all the way to your room, flinging open the doors, and discovering rumpled sheets and pillows strewn all over the floor, but no you. "I panicked and roused the others and some support staff, too. Security claimed they hadn’t caught a glimpse of you but they joined in the search anyway. Then, when it was almost dawn, you came trudging up the driveway, wet, muddy and very tired, atop this huge black horse. It almost blew our minds when you claimed you had no recollection of where you had gone to, how you found the horse, or how it brought you home, either.” “So nobody knows how I came to get Midnight?” I asked for confirmation. “Nobody,” she answered, shaking her head. “Oh,” I said again. We were quiet for a while, then curiosity got the better of me. “Say, what’s he like, Skye?” “Hmm,” Skye contemplated, her forehead furrowed. “Let’s see now. He’s huge and has a solid black coat, a very rare trait for his stock, or so I heard. I think he’s a thoroughbred, of Albinian descent, if you consider his features. He has prominent eyes, large nostrils and a small teacup muzzle. He’s got a gracefully arched neck, long sloping shoulders and a broad chest, too. As well as a short, strong back. He’s about 15 hands in height and probably weigh 1,000 pounds, though it may be slightly less now. He hasn’t been eating properly after you left.” “Left?” I asked, confused. Then realization hit me. “Oh, when I left for Mucia Pasifika, you mean.” “So,” she murmured softly after a slight pause. “Henri has been telling you what happened, has he?” “I think he means to speed my memory recovery,” I clarified, laughing casually, hoping I wouldn’t get Henri into hot water because of my slip. “Oh, well,” Skye shrugged. “Anyway, Midnight is very special, no doubt about it. He’s intelligent and highly responsive, and answers well to your commands. He’s strong and brawny, too, and his speed, agility and stamina is commendable.” “That all?” I queried, seeing her halt in mid-conversation. “What do you mean?” she shot back, eyes flashing. “Well, it’s just that I overheard Penny referring to him as a ‘monster’,” I finally confided awkwardly. Surprisingly, she threw back her head and laughed. “Oh, that Penny,” she managed to respond in between chuckles. “You mustn’t mind everything she says. That’s one of her special gifts, I guess. The gift of gab.” “So you’re saying she was just pulling my leg?” I pressed her for verification. “Well,” she replied, sobering up somewhat. “Penny doesn’t lie. That’s not what I implied. It’s just that, well, she tends to exaggerate sometimes.” “And you’re telling me now that Midnight is OK? No monster?” I asked again. “Well,” she avoided looking directly at me. “I’m afraid he’s earned himself a reputation for being highly-strung and can be quite temperamental, too.” “Why keep him then if he’s so much trouble?” I inquired, seeing right through her lame underplayed explanations. “Because,” Skye replied exasperatedly, “he’s your horse, that’s why! We couldn’t locate his previous owner, if he ever had one - though this seems somewhat unlikely - and everybody could clearly see how much you both loved each other. He practically worships the ground you walk on. Besides, we were always cracking jokes about how well-suited the pair of you were.” “You mean, I was difficult?” I asked in confusion, a little hurt at her remark. “No, no,” Skye replied quickly. “Well, OK, maybe a little moody. But you’ve changed, though.” “After the coma or before that?” I wanted to be sure on this one. “Oh, well,” Skye smiled resignedly, knowing I had her cornered. “After the coma, if you must know. You’re somehow more quiet nowadays, a little contemplative and laid-back, too.” “How was I before?” I quietly asked her. “Well, you were, oh, I don’t know, spirited, I guess. Vibrant, that’s more like it. You always seemed to have bundles of energy stored, and always trying out new things, some of them disputably dangerous, even when you knew you were accident-prone.” “Oh, yeah,” I cut in, remembering. “Dr. Ryan back at the hospital told me I needed ‘constant babying’, that was what he called it.” “Yeah, well,” continued Skye. “You were more into artistic stuff, too. Sometimes going off on lone trips to paint or write. You never let us read any of the stuff you wrote, though. And maybe, because of your creative mind, you were often impatient, sullen and moody.” “Yikes!” I did not remember any of it. “Sounds more like Qit when he first came to the mansion, though.” Skye laughed again and commented, “Well, he had grown up in so many ways since then. I personally find him more agreeable now, don’t you?” “Can’t say,” I reminded her. “Don’t remember him from before.” “Yeah, right,” she shut her eyes and gave herself a rap on the head. “What was I thinking?” “But did you mind me being difficult and all?” I asked timidly, afraid to know the answer. In response, she hugged me again. “Of course not, you fool,” she smiled broadly. “You are my twin, after all.” “How about the others?” I disengaged myself from her. “Oh, they were OK with it,” came the answer. “We all have our individual strengths and weaknesses. They accepted you for who you were, and constantly reminded themselves what you must have had to go through in the first place to reach Melize alive.” “They had to remind themselves?” I asked, aghast. “Was I really that bad?” “Well, we all were back then, after a fashion,” she grinned good-naturedly. “But during those times, we had a lot to be thankful for. Most of us liked to reflect on the past to thoroughly appreciate and be grateful to what fate had kindly brought us. Oh, look, here we are.” Reaching the lavender-painted fence, Skye then walked right up to it and whistled. Automatically, two of the horses gave a welcoming whinny and galloped excitedly toward her. I drew back at first, expecting a stampede, but when the horses stopped short of the fence, I gathered my wits about me and neared Skye cautiously. “This one here’s Strider,” grinned Skye, patting the brown horse on his snout. He turned one huge brown eye on me, flared his nostrils and showed me his huge yellow teeth. I took a defensive step back but Skye merely laughed and rubbed noses with him. He neighed softly to her all the while, and upon closer inspection I saw that he was roan and was dappled white on both sides. “Macho-looking tyke, eh? He usually takes some time to get comfortable with someone, but most times he’s friendly and playful.” “And the other one?” I questioned, eyeing the white one who kept poking her head close to mine, as if preparing to make a head-butt. “Now this one here is the sweetest mare in the whole wide world,” Skye beamed at the white horse and scratched her behind one ear. “Her name’s Uni, short for Unicorn. See the gray mark on her forehead? I had always imagined that that was the spot where her horn had been, before it was chopped clean off, you know. If she had had it, she would have been able to converse with us in human language, but you see, she lost all her powers once her horn was taken away from her.” I gazed at Skye, marveling at her high level of imagination. But what a dreamer she was! It made me worry, too – was I as bad as her? The self-written manuscripts in my room seemed to point to this direction. Meanwhile, both horses had begun to nudge Skye impatiently. She laughed and scolded them, then took out from her front pocket a lump of sugar for each horse. “Have you had these horses long?” I asked curiously. “Yes,” she replied, patting and stroking both horses at once. “I got Strider right after I came here. His owner had then been a friend’s acquaintance, and he wasn’t very good at keeping horses. Couldn’t afford it, either. In fact, he had been prepared to put the poor gelding to sleep until I intervened. I asked him to sell Strider to me, and that was how I got him.” “And how about Uni?” I countered. “Oh, Uni,” Skye tossed her head back, laughing. “I’ve always had her, ever since I could remember. My earliest recollection was at age five or so, and I remembered her as a foal back then." That means she must be very old, I reasoned, wisely keeping the thought to myself. Well, at least the fairy tale part now makes sense, considering that it stemmed from the imagination of a child. Then, aloud I asked, “What about that one then?” I pointed toward the chestnut horse grazing in the middle of the paddock. As if understanding us, she looked up and gazed at us from across the field. That was when I noticed the white round mark on her forehead. “That mare belongs to Penny,” explained Skye. “Her name’s Cupcake, with a disposition to match. A gift from Penny’s uncle when she first joined us.” “Ah,” I murmured, not knowing what else to say. I just stood there leaning against a wooden post as I allowed Skye some privacy basking in the attention of her two horses under the warm glow of the declining sun. At last she gave each a final pat on the head and turned to face me. “Let’s go to the stables now, shall we?” Skye smiled brightly at me. I felt a lump in my throat when I heard this suggestion. “You haven’t met Midnight yet, have you? Come, what are we waiting for? Let’s go!” She drove me toward the log-walled stables. Inside, we found a chap of about eighteen, tall and lanky for his age with a shock of red mop on his head, carrying a pail of water. “This is Alric,” she introduced me to him. I couldn’t stop myself from staring at his freckled face postmarked with scabs and band-aids. “He’s the groomer here and lives in the loft on top. How are the horses today, Alric?” “The usual,” came the terse reply. “Meaning?” Skye prodded on, lifting one eyebrow up to show she meant business. “Meaning the other three are OK, but Midnight’s giving me a headache,” Alric explained. “He almost kicked me when I changed the hay in his stable this morning. We sent him to the vet yesterday for shots and had his intestinal worms treated and he came back very ill-tempered.” “Ah, thanks, Alric,” Skye seemed taken aback by Alric’s elaborate report. “By the way, could you kindly lead the way for Azure? She’s looking forward to seeing Midnight after all this while.” “It’s your funeral,” Alric said, bluntly and disbelievingly. He stooped to pick up the tin pail he had put down on the wooden floor and straightened up. “I was just on my way there meself. This way, then.” He led me to a relatively clean stable with a fan affixed to the nearby wall running at full force. He put the pail down at his feet, water swooshing inside it. Then he explained they usually kept this part of the building relatively dark because “he has sensitive eyes, and he’s sure to let you know if he doesn’t like it.” “I’d rather not get too near to that darned horse,” he intoned warningly, folding his arms cockily. “It’s OK, Azure,” Skye was assuring me. My legs wobbled as I feebly walked up to her. “He’s a good boy. He won’t hurt us.” I heard Alric give an amused snort at this last comment, but Skye chose to ignore him. “Right,” I managed to say, teeth chattering slightly. “What do I do now?” “Call out to him,” she coaxed me, putting a lump of sugar into my outstretched palm. “Usually he prefers apples, but this’ll do.” I held my breath as I peered into the darkness of the dingy stable. The light was deliberately dim here, and I didn’t exactly possess a hawk’s keen vision. All I could see were vague shapes and shadows looming in the far corner. But at Skye’s prodding, I cautiously extended my arm through the gap between wooden planks of the stable door, whistling and calling out Midnight’s name, all the while proffering him the sugar lump. All of a sudden, I reared my hand back and fell backward, as powerful hooves thundered at the door and almost brought it down. Panic-stricken, I didn’t even feel the pain in my rear as I watched the door shudder again and again with every kick, sending tremors all throughout the logged building. “Get me away from him,” I suddenly screamed at horrified Skye. “You brought me here on purpose – you wanted to kill me! Get me away, get me away!” Alric pulled me up by the armpits and brought me to rest against a wooden post on the opposite wall. Amid hysterical sobs, I overheard him coldly suggesting to frozen Skye that Midnight be put to sleep. 9) The Fever That night, I came down with a fever. Despite Skye’s well-meaning offers, I refused to allow her by my side, insisting instead to have Henri take care of me. I didn’t feel comfortable being ‘babied’ by strange support staff, either. Despite my oral temperature of 40 degrees in Celsius, I still had no trouble remembering the incident before, as well as the vexing memory of having snapped and bombarding poor Skye with cruel nonsensical accusations. Dr. Ryan hadn’t come. Instead, a young doctor perhaps in his late 20s whose name I failed to register had been the one to personally examine me. He diagnosed me and casually brushed my fever off as the common cold. True, my symptoms included a running nose, sore throat and some minor body aches. He had taken the time to interrogate Skye: what had I been doing, with whom, was I stressed or did I receive shocking news or undergo a shocking incident perhaps related to my past, and so on. He also added that I could’ve been infected from the hospital, and made a passing remark about Dr. Ryan himself being down with a cold. Skye had answered to the best of her ability, all the while watching me with eyes wide with consternation. In the end, the doctor stood up, passed some medicine plus instructions to Penny, and exited. Penny passed the pills to Henri, who propped me up to a sitting position, gently fed me some steaming rice porridge with a spoon, then helped me swallow the pills. Very soon, drowsiness fell upon me and I was lost to the world. It must have been several hours later when I awoke, my air passage slightly blocked. At first I thought I had been left alone as the lights were on dim, but after shaking off my grogginess, I could make out three figures not far from my bed, whispering to each other. I squinted my slightly crusty red-brimmed eyes and determined that they were in fact Henri, Skye and Que. A full second passed by before I discovered they weren’t aware that I was awake and that it was close to midnight. “You should have thought about it beforehand!” Que had suddenly raised his voice angrily. What was this, were the three fighting? “Hush,” admonished Henri, bringing a finger to his lips. “We don’t want to wake her.” “I’m the one to blame,” Skye said in a low dispirited voice. I shut my eyes tight, feeling bad. I realized from the tremor in her voice that she was on the verge of crying. “You’re right. I shouldn’t have let it happen.” “This wouldn’t have happened had you allowed me to be with her,” Que raved through gritted teeth. “But no, you guys were always around like a bunch of hawks, always watching me, never letting me be. Let Henri handle everything. Satisfied now?” “Stop it, Que,” warned Henri, putting a comforting hand upon Skye’s trembling shoulder. “Don’t be too harsh on her. She meant well.” “Screw it,” Que remarked cruelly. “She deserves it.” They went on and on like this, jumping from one subject to another, all of which were related to me in one way or another. I couldn’t make head or tail of what they were mumbling about, except perhaps for the fact that Que was clearly blaming Skye for everything. I felt a cough coming up, and tried to stifle it the best I could. But in the end my throat felt too itchy to hold, and I allowed a dry racking cough to escape. The others abruptly stopped their conversation short and crept nearer to me. Skye turned on the bedside lamp, tentatively put her cool soft palm on my forehead to gauge my temperature level and smiled at me comfortingly. I saw that her eyes were red and swollen and mentally gave Que a kick for making her cry. I admit being tired of Skye’s know-it-all attitude sometimes, but after all, she was my self-professed twin. With no other living relations I knew of, that made her my next-of-kin. “I want to tell you something,” I rasped, pulling her hand to bring her closer. “I’m really sorry for cracking up the way I did this afternoon. I don’t know what got into me. Forgive me?” She smiled warmly, then shook her head. “No, it was my fault, actually. I was the one who forced you to go to the stables.” On the other side of the bed, I saw Que turn toward Henri, arms folded, smugly telling him, “See? Told you.” “Que, Henri,” intoned Skye quietly. “Would you both mind going to the kitchen and getting some food for Azure?” “I’m really not that hungry,” I objected weakly, while Que went on to argue with Henri why they both had to go down, instead of just Henri. “Ah,” the smile never left Skye’s lips. “But you need to eat before your medication. The last one was four hours ago.” Then she turned to frown at the two boys. “Que? Henri? Whatever are you waiting for?” “We’re going, we’re going,” assured Henri, dragging an unwilling Que behind as he went out the door. Skye and I chatted amicably enough about almost everything in general, though we steered clear away from the subject of the afternoon episode. Pretty soon Henri returned with a bowl of porridge and chicken broth on a tray while Que held a steaming mug of cocoa in his hands. Skye took the porridge from Henri’s hands while Que put the mug down onto the bedside table. She blended the rice with the chicken broth, using the spoon to stir so as to speed up its cooling time. She brought the spoon up to her lips to test its warmth, decided it was OK, then began to spoon-feed me. I could only take in not more than ten spoonfuls without feeling the urge to throw up. She then passed me the pills to swallow and the hot cocoa to sip afterward. “It’s the witching hour already,” I heard Que mutter as he glanced at my alarm clock. There was a sudden pensive silence all around. All at once we jumped when somebody used the knocker outside to rap on my bedroom door. It opened quietly and we were glad to see that it was only the cook’s helper, Eva. She had thoughtfully brought up three more mugs and a stone teapot full of hot cocoa as well as a plate of cookies for all of us to enjoy. “Not much of a talker, is she,” I commented while sipping the mug Henri had refilled after Eva had left. I couldn’t stop myself from comparing her to the uncouth groomer from the stables. “I would say the same about you myself if I hadn’t known you better,” remarked Que in between sips. I glanced at him and saw something in his eyes that made me turn my face away uncomfortably. The door was suddenly thrown open again and in strode Qit. He stopped in his tracks when he saw me sitting up on the bed. “Oh, hi, Azure,” he greeted me. “Didn’t think you were awake. Oh, what’s this? Midnight snack? Supper? Yum-yum. Pass me your mug, Que.” He shared mugs with Que while sitting atop the king bench with Que and Henri. “What are you doing up at this hour?” Skye asked him. “Tomorrow’s the tourney, you know.” “Yeah,” Qit replied, bringing the mug up to his lips for another sip of hot cocoa. “Thanks, Skye. You reminded me. So when are you gonna get to bed?” He gave his twin a thump on the back and a piece of cookie shot out of the latter’s mouth, nearly hitting me in the eye. “I came here especially to remind you, it’s past your bedtime already.” “Aw,” Que sputtered. “Just give me five more minutes.” “Five minutes and that’s it,” Qit agreed sternly, arms akimbo to show Que he meant what he said. We talked about the tournament, which was going to be held at 4 p.m. in the army camp nearby. Qit and Que would be the only Fighters participating, and other government officials were going to join their team. It wasn’t really an actual tournament, more of a friendly match against the soldiers. But the brothers kept using the word tournament to show that they were serious in crushing the opposition. “We’re gonna wipe them off,” stressed Qit fierily. “Annihilate them. Totally.” “Yeah, man,” Que nodded in approval, giving Qit a high five. “I heard some commandos are in the opposition,” commented Skye pessimistically, though her eyes were twinkling mischievously. “Last I saw, they were big, brawny and capable. You sure you guys can handle them?” “Hey,” Qit answered in a hurt voice, jumping to his feet and flexing his muscles for all in the room to see. “Who do you think we are anyway? Of course we’ll cream them!” “Excellently said, bro,” agreed Que, and they exchanged another high five. “And now I think your time is almost up,” said Qit, glancing at the alarm clock. “Oh, yes, it’s up.” Only then I realized that Que had been humoring his brother in a valiant effort to make him forget his promised five minutes. This understanding as well as Que’s grouchy look as he stood up made me smile in amusement. “Get well soon, Azure,” Que pleaded as he waved his hand goodbye. “You don’t have to come see the match tomorrow, but it’ll help if you pray for us.” “Yeah, right,” snorted Qit, shoving Que out the door. “What happened to your macho talk a few minutes ago? Macho men don’t need people spurring them on.” I heard their dissipating trail of voice arguing and jesting as they made their way down the corridor. Beside me, Henri collected the mugs and arranged them onto the tray. Then he turned to look at Skye. “Skye,” he asked. “Do you want me to watch over her tonight?” “I was hoping that she would let me instead,” she smiled in answer. I quickly agreed and Henri then blew me a goodnight kiss as he made his way out the door with the leaden tray. “Where are you going?” I asked drowsily as the effect of the medicine began to kick in. She was heading toward the walk-in closet when she stopped and turned to look at me. “I think there’s an extra sleeping bag in there,” she explained, pointing toward the closet. “No need,” I told her, flipping the duvet aside and gesturing her to share my bed. She took the fluffy pillow I had passed to her and was patting it before resting her head on it. That was the last image I had of her as I fell into sleep. And dreamed again. There was darkness all around me, though not so menacing as before. I felt calmer in this dream, surer of myself. Stronger perhaps and somewhat wiser, too. A strong sense of identity seemed to envelop me. The darkness was not oppressive, rather it was comforting and private. I heard the sound of hooves and suddenly saw that I was standing under a lone street lamp in some strange town square, cobblestones under my feet. The cold dark mist around me slowly evaporated, till I finally came face to face with a big black horse. We studied each other for a while, not moving a muscle. It was I who first broke the silence. “Hello, Midnight,” I greeted him cordially, keeping my hands straight by my side. “Hello, Azure,” he neighed back in reply and stayed perhaps three feet away, refusing to take another step closer. In the dream, it somehow felt right for me to understand the horse and vice versa, as if we shared the same language. “You sure scared the wits out of me today,” I scolded him dourly. “Yeah, well,” he seemed to pause as if to think of the proper words to use. “I didn’t recognize you at first. You seemed very different from when we last met.” We contemplated each other in silence. “It’s been a long time,” I commented. “It’s been a long time,” he agreed affably. “People change,” I added. “People change,” he acknowledged. “But beasts seldom do.” I stared at him for a while, reflecting on what he had just said. There seemed to be some deeper meaning to that remark. “You are not the same person,” he suddenly decided, and prepared to move away. “Wait,” I called out to him, and he swung back his head to look at me. “How do you know whether I’m the same person or not? And what gives you the right to judge me?” He snorted impatiently. “Your smell, your look, your walk, your talk.” “And?” I urged him to continue. “They are not the same,” he emphasized. I reached out to touch him and found I had a currycomb in my right hand. I used this to rub Midnight while using the left hand to stroke his coal black coat. “How do my hands feel?” I asked as his skin shuddered beneath my touch. “The same?” He paused before closing his eyes and answering, “Different. The left one especially.” I looked at the hand mentioned and chided myself for forgetting. “Oh, this. I had this changed. Medical reasons … I think.” He seemed to accept the logic behind this explanation and whinnied softly in reply. “Did we often do this before?” I pondered aloud, resting my cheek against him. “Communicate through dreams, I mean.” “Sometimes,” he opened one eye lazily and used it to stare at me. “Especially when we had something important to discuss.” “Oh,” I exclaimed wonderingly. “Is this a special occasion, then?” This time he opened both eyes wide. “You seem to have lost your memory,” he commented perceptively. “Yeah,” I sighed. “It happens.” “You seem to have moved your sign, too,” he neighed, butting his head meaningfully against my shoulder. “Yes,” I replied ruefully. “The worst thing is, I have no recollection about it being missing at all.” “Missing?” he seemed slightly startled. “It’s still there, though not at the same place. Darkness still belongs to you.” “Huh?” I queried, not comprehending him fully. But he just snorted and stamped his feet. “You have a sickly smell about you,” he noted finally. “So that’s why I smell funny, huh?” I was somewhat relieved. “Phew! And I thought you were saying I was totally somebody else, who just happened to bang her head, lose her memory and wake up to a mistaken identity which never belonged to her in the first place.” “Huh?” It was Midnight’s turn to be perplexed, but I just went on and ignored it. “Tell me,” I implored. “Why do I seem so different? Is it my hair? I had to crop it, you know.” He seemed to ponder the question over in his mind before finally answering “You have been touched by Light, by the brightness of life. Even now I can see its lasting impression on you, and the light it sends forth, is spreading like wildfire. I see it has given you another chance. The choice is now up to you, whether to accept the opportunity and its consequences fully or to walk away and never look back.” “Hey,” I admonished him. “Slow down! Don’t speak in cryptic language!” “You know I can’t help it,” he blinked his eyes at me. “In our waking hours we speak different languages. In our sleep we are bound by limitations set by the dreamscape. I have not the strength to go against what has been ordained.” “But what do you mean I had been touched by light?” I pleaded. “Do you mean Henri Lait? Do you mean the Bearer of Light?” “Be careful of the fair one,” he warned, clicking his hooves against the cobblestones. “I know you are good friends with the Bearer of Light. But you must remember your place. You are Bearer of Darkness. Light and darkness should not be as one. It was never meant to be.” “If I’m the Bearer of Darkness and Henri the Bearer of Light,” I asked, tongue in cheek, “what the heck does that make you?” He stared at me for a long time, as if he thought this was a trick question and that I meant to rephrase the query soon. But I just stared back at him, my face serious. Finally, he surprised me by stretching his forelegs in front of him and bowed down to me the best he could. “You are my master,” he admitted at last, eyes cast downward to the ground. “And I am your slave. I exist only to serve you.” “Whoa,” I told him, taken aback. “Back up a minute, will ya? Do you realize what on earth it was you just said?” He suddenly straightened and cocked his head to one side as if listening intently to something I couldn’t hear. Finally, he turned to look at me, his huge brown eyes grave. “I will try to take this sickness away from you. But afterward, we will have to part.” He snorted in my face and when I coughed, gave me a head-butt and shoved me so roughly that I went flying. When I sat up, I found that I was in my own bed, in my own room, with Skye snoring gently beside me. 10) The Monday Breakfast “I think I’m going to go see Midnight after this,” I casually declared that morning while we were at the dining table. I had insisted I was fit to join the others for breakfast. When Skye had checked my temperature, she was surprised to note that there had been a great decline and that it had almost reached the normal level. She mentioned something about it maybe being night fever, that is fever that reveals its symptoms only at night. I had rebuked her and claimed this was what Dr. Ryan had referred to as my exceptional regenerative abilities. At the dining table, Skye stopped eating her rice porridge mixed well with boiled potato chunks, fried groundnuts, anchovies, soy sauce, fermented egg yolk, as well as some herbs and spices. Cook Ada, when she first heard of my intention to join the others for breakfast, had thought this would be fair to everyone; besides, she didn’t want me to be tempted by food unsuitable for my sick palate which the others might have had. All around the table, everybody froze in mid-conversation. Then Skye looked down into her bowl and continued to bring her spoon up to her lips to eat, seemingly unperturbed. “You can’t,” she finally said. “What?” I whirled around, not expecting such an answer. “But, why? If it’s about yesterday, then I - " “No, it’s not about yesterday,” she answered slowly. Then she turned to look at me and smiled. “It’s just that Alric’s taking him to the blacksmith today to have his new shoes fitted.” “Oh,” I let out a relieved laugh and felt the tension around the table dissipate. I pulled at the white woolen cardigan Skye had forced me to wear closer around me. “Well, tomorrow, then.” “How do you feel about the match?” Penny was asking Que from across the table. “Tournament, not a match,” Qit pompously corrected her. “Whatever,” she remarked, clearly not amused. She turned her attention back to Que. “So do you think you’re ready to fight those muscle-bound hunks?” Que swallowed the food he was chewing with an audible gulp before answering, “’Course we are. The question here is: are they ready for us?” At the same time, Qit was telling Penny, “What hunks? All I saw seemed to be cripples and maimed little boys.” He saw my feigned hurt expression and quickly apologized. “No offense, Azure. You’re no cripple; why, you’ll be jumping up and down again in no time.” “Very well said,” Henri drawled sarcastically, pausing with his spoon in mid-air. It was Qit’s turn to look hurt then, and once satisfied with this sight, Henri nonchalantly resumed eating. “You don’t have to come, you know,” Que turned to tell me. But something in his eyes told me the opposite. “I just want you to concentrate on getting better first.” “But I am feeling better,” I retorted. “Much, much better. You can count on me to come and cheer for you.” “Be ready with your pompoms and cheerleading outfit, then,” commented Penny sardonically. I was interested to notice how the tips of Que’s ears reddened as he engrossed himself with examining his spoon. “So, Henri,” Que finally looked up to glance at Henri. Henri stopped talking to Qit and turned to return a surprised look. “You said you were going to drive Azure to the match later on?” “Yeah,” Henri answered, scratching his head. “But my car’s in the workshop so I guess I’ll be taking her car instead.” “Well, that’s settled then,” Que concluded, throwing his napkin onto the table and pushing his chair back to stand up. “I have a car?” I whispered to Skye. “Of course you do,” Skye smiled back patiently. “Henri will show it to you later as we all have to go off to work soon.” Then it registered to me that they were all sensibly dressed. The men, clean-shaven and reeking of cologne, were in starched tucked-in shirts and graceful slacks. Penny wore a serious office skirt, blouse and jacket ensemble, while Skye herself was attired in a dark suit and accompanying pants. “Oh, yeah,” I realized suddenly that it was Monday. “But what exactly do you guys do for a living?” I hadn’t really been satisfied with Henri’s previous answer. “Well,” I saw Skye hesitate. “We’re Fighters.” “That I know,” I replied. “But what do we do?” “Oh, Henri can answer that one later,” she replied, whirling toward sputtering Henri. “It’s his off day today.” Then, she abruptly stood up and changed the subject while beckoning to the others. “C’mon, everyone, it’s 7.30 already. Better get ready.” I saw the usual trio gathering dirty dishes to bring to the kitchen, then Ms. Sandy appeared, whispering something in Ari’s ears. “Why, bring her in,” he bellowed, beaming. He stood up and excitedly went over to clasp my hands, at once pulling me up to my feet. “Azure, there’s somebody I’d like you to meet.” I turned around to look at the direction he was gazing, and saw a somewhat timid round-faced brunette with wavy hair tied up in a ponytail coming from the reception area and passing through the opened dining room door. She gave a glad smile when she saw Ari, and a shy one when she met my eyes. All around, the others greeted her with whoops and cheers while rushing about doing their chores. “Azure,” grinned Ari hugely, his big hand on the small of the woman’s back. “I’d like to introduce you to Joy, my wife.” I managed not to let my eyes pop out too much as I took her proffered hand in mine. I didn’t realize he was married. “How was your trip, darling?” Ari asked while giving her a kiss on her temple. “Everything OK?” “It was OK,” she answered softly, blushing slightly at his public display of affection. “Joy stays with her parents in Mir Var during weekends,” he explained to me while wrapping an arm around her. “She usually meets me here on Monday, just in time for work, then I’ll be sending her off on Fridays. It is, after all, our first one, you know. Her mum’s better suited than I am in looking after her.” He glanced meaningfully at Joy’s stomach. “Besides, she’s always pining for her mum’s cooking.” “Are you…” I began confusedly, only then taking in her slightly protruding abdomen. “I mean, how many months along are you?” “Four months,” replied Ari proudly. “Five months, to be exact,” corrected Joy, looking up at Ari. “Well, it was four months last week,” Ari commented dourly. His wife answered him with a slight laugh and a pinch on his cheek, and he broke out into smiles again. “Do you work together?” I asked inquisitively. “No,” replied Joy with a slight smile. “I work at this travel agency not far from the Maribou Army Camp. My mom usually drives me here on Mondays then he’ll drop me off on his way to work. By the way, sorry I didn’t visit you in the hospital, Azure. Certain smells, for example hospital antiseptic, still makes me nauseous, and I didn’t want to get sick when I visited you.” “I’ve been telling her she should rest often, and shouldn’t be working hard in her condition,” complained Ari. “But, no, she claims she’s a modern woman and deserves her own career and her own life.” “Hey, the last trimester is still some time away,” laughed Joy. “I’ll take things easy then.” “Anyway,” Ari must have noted my dumbfounded expression because he was being very explanatory. “I live here during weekends. During weekdays, I go back to our house on Maribou Hill.” “So, have you packed your things already, honey?” asked Joy. “It’s upstairs,” Ari replied. “I’ll go get it. You want a drink or something? Otherwise, just wait in the car.” To me, he turned and bid me farewell. “You’ll be coming to the camp with Henri later on, right? Well, we’ll see each other then.” “Right,” I nodded, waving to both of them. “Bye-bye!” I watched them disappear out the door then let out a sigh as I sank back onto my seat. “Very lovey-dovey,” Henri’s voice commented. “It used to irritate me at first, but now I’m used to it.” I turned and saw he was sitting on Skye’s seat next to me. The dining room was empty aside from the two of us. “You never told me I had a car,” I hissed, leaning toward him with both elbows fixed on the table. He looked at me and answered calmly, “Well, I seem to have assumed wrongly that you would have guessed that one out on your own.” “And why is that?” I insisted. “Well, cars are an important mode of transportation,” he elaborated, shrugging. “Everybody has cars nowadays.” “But what kind of car is it?” I pressed him, realizing suddenly that if I had been rich enough to own my own horse, property and expensive items, it’d only make sense for me to have my own car as well. “Well,” Henri began. “It’s a rather old model of the Revival Bug.” “What?” I asked, thinking I was not hearing correctly. “What would I be doing with an old obsolete car?” “It is rather old,” admitted Henri. “And it is rather rare to find roadworthy models nowadays, due mainly to maintenance issues. But obsolete, no, not yet, by a far chance. Why did you choose to buy it in the first place, you say? Hmm, it’s just your taste, I guess. You’ve always liked vintage stuff.” “No, I do not,” I insisted. “I like things modern and simple.” “Hey, just look at your room,” Henri snorted. “It’s anything but modern and simple.” “And that’s exactly what’s wrong with it,” I said passionately. “Do you know how painful it is to be greeted by the sight of nothing but boring beiges and browns every morning?” Henri stared thoughtfully at ranting me for a while before answering, “Gee, I didn’t realize it would tick you off this much. Didn’t you like it? And if you’re so uncomfortable with it, why didn’t you say so? We did help decorate your room just before you came back. Granted, a hundred per cent of the furniture were yours to begin with, but the positioning and renovation designs were all our own. So come on, let’s go check this room of yours and see whether any makeovers are necessary.” He pulled me to my feet and curtly passed me my crutches. I limped after him awkwardly, not exactly knowing the proper thing to say. In the end, my dim-witted mouth started to automatically spew out an assortment of complaints and grievances which surfaced since I came back, everything from the room and Skye’s bossiness to Midnight and Penny’s sarcasm. Deep down inside, I felt a little ashamed of myself for belittling their obvious effort to welcome me home, but it was a little too late to take back my words. He remained quiet through this one-sided tirade until we came to the foot of the stairs, where he helped me with the stair-lift. “I really like your shirt,” I complimented him sincerely as he arranged my feet on the footrest and held on to my crutches for me. He was wearing a blue checkered shirt, with the sleeves rolled up to his elbows and ends tucked into his blue jeans. I thought the shirt brought out the sparkle in his turquoise eyes. “At first I thought you were working today like the others were. I mean, because of your shirt.” “Whether I’m on leave or not,” he explained patiently, “it doesn’t matter if I wear a shirt whenever I feel like it. Unless of course you prefer me to be shirtless. Is that it?” “Hey, that was a genuine compliment, believe it or not,” I told him defensively, thinking he was being silly. “No offense, OK?” “None taken,” he replied. Once we reached the second floor and he was about to head to the front door of my room, I stopped him. “Why?” he inquired, looking back at me from over his shoulder. “Because I locked the door,” I explained sheepishly. “And I don’t have the front door key. I went out through the back door, walked the length of the balcony, then went through Skye’s back door with Skye, and we finally went out through her front door.” He shook his head, amused. “Did you by any chance lock your back door, too?” “Yes,” I replied, then fished out the key from the right pocket of my baby blue jeans. “Here. See?” “You shouldn’t have locked the door,” he criticized, walking ahead. I followed, though not exactly sure where he was leading me. “I’m sure you’ve noticed there are security cameras everywhere, and the security room below is manned 24/7. Besides, here we all trust each other. All staff members have been working here since Skye first came, and she can easily vouch for their honesty. Did you notice Skye locking her door this morning?” “No,” I admitted truthfully. Then, when I saw him put his hand on the doorjamb a few doors down from my room, I called out, “What’re you doing?” “Going to my room, of course,” he replied, a little surprised. He turned the doorjamb and pushed the door open. “You weren’t thinking of going through Skye’s room to reach the balcony, did you? Personally, I wouldn’t feel good doing it without the owner’s permission, even if she happens to be my good friend.” I laughed nervously, a little offended by his choice of words. “Of course not.” “Then, come on in,” he invited, gesturing me to enter his room. “But I have nothing against you or any others using my room if I’m not around,” I managed to add as I walked in and quickly discovered that his room was slightly smaller than mine. There was a study desk with a glass tabletop cluttered with official-looking documents on one side of the wall. A PC as well as a telephone lay on top of it. Like my room, his also had a fireplace, refrigerator, walk-in closet but with transparent glass doors and the likes, and because of its positioning, I assumed the door next to the fireplace led to the bathroom. Nevertheless, unlike mine, his furniture was mostly modern and light. As I walked past, I noticed that his untidy bed, strewn all over with clothes, was a wall-bed flanked by a cabinet on each side for more space efficiency. I sighed, for he evidently acted as if nothing was wrong with his room being in such disarray, and I realized that it would stay like that till almost noon when the housekeeping staff began to make room calls. “Through here,” he told me in an unperturbed manner, striding over to the doors leading to the balcony and flinging them open. We went out to the spacious white balcony. He immediately steered in the direction of my bedroom but stopped short when I asked him to halt. “What is it this time?” he groaned impatiently, and retraced his steps to stand beside me, arms akimbo. “Look,” I pointed toward the back of the mansion. “Isn’t that Skye? What’s she doing here still? And who’s that guy with her?” Henri walked to the balustrade and scrutinized the two figures down below. “That’s Dark,” he told me. “Skye’s husband.” “Skye’s what?” I sputtered furiously. “Are there any more spouses that you guys have forgotten to tell me? You are still a bachelor, aren’t you? And Penny?” “Yes, we’re still unmarried,” Henri replied, unruffled. “And stop mentioning Penny’s name in conjunction with mine. I don’t like it.” “Well, surprise,” I almost yelled at him. “I don’t like it either when you guys conveniently think I remember everything and ignore to tell me the important facts!” He stared at me while I paused for breath, wheezing slightly, my face red. “Had enough?” he finally asked me. By this time I had already begun to cool down somewhat. “Want to let your anger out on me some more?” “What’s the use,” I said bitterly. “Nobody tells me anything.” “People only tell you what they want you to know,” he confided in me, wrapping one comforting arm around my shoulders. I rested against him and shut my eyes, feeling the bitterness melt away. “Isn’t that a fact of life? When people discovered you had amnesia, they must have realized, consciously or otherwise, that they could be selective in determining what to tell you and what to hold back.” “But it’s so unfair,” I protested, lightly punching his chest with my fists. “Well, life isn’t exactly a bed of roses,” he remarked philosophically. After a while, he let go of me, and I went to lean against the balustrade to watch the couple below. “Hey,” I suddenly exclaimed. “They seem to be fighting!” “Now you know why she didn’t tell you about her marriage,” Henri said, glancing lazily at the two, then added, “and why she never bothered to bring him to visit you at the hospital.” “Are they always like this?” I asked curiously, noticing that even from this distance I could make out Dark's unmistakably handsome sharp features and fair pale skin that made his cropped-short jet-black hair stand out more prominently. Skye and him made a striking couple, no doubt about it. But their relationship still seemed to have a lot of room for improvement. Even at that moment, Skye was laying a hand on his arm as if pleading to him, but he merely brushed it aside and started bickering again. We were too far from them to hear what they were discussing, though. “I’ve seen a lot of married couples disagree,” Henri commented. “I think it happens a lot in marital relationships. But then, I wouldn’t know.” He then went to pull my arm. “OK, that’s enough for now. Let’s go! We’ll just give them some privacy, OK? We’ve got better things to do than watch this sorry soap opera anyway.” I took one sad final glimpse of Skye sinking down to the grass in despair as the proud Dark turned his back on her and walked away. “OK,” I said. Then I, too, turned and shuffled away after Henri. 11) The Basketball Match In my room, Henri helped me go through my closet where we found an assortment of wide beautiful cloths, all of them in various cooling shades of blue, and most were of either checkered or floral design. At first, I was baffled as to what he had in mind. In the end, he explained that I had previously used them as furniture coverings and proceeded to demonstrate that by flapping one and letting it settle on the leather sofa. He ended up blanketing most of my furniture, like the study desk and bookcase, with blue cloths, good-naturedly agreeable to my request. I was extremely delighted by the results. “Satisfied now?” he had asked fairly anxiously after storing unused cloths back in the closet. “Much!” I had replied enthusiastically and appreciatively. “So now, are you sure you’re strong enough for a drive?” he asked for the umpteenth time that day. “Yes!” I responded, more enthusiastically than before. Afterward, we had a simple lunch of bread dipped constantly into a bowl of chicken broth and warm milk. Despite my unwillingness, Henri forced the medicine, minus the one that made me drowsy, down my throat. He later took me to the garage where I took my own sweet time ogling at the fleet of sports cars and antiques. He briefly pointed out which cars belonged to whom, while I oohed and aahed without really comprehending him. “And this one is yours,” he finally said, using his long index finger to point at the car at the very end of the garage. The vehicle was an old, dusty yellow Revival T32910 model, also known as the Revival Bug because of its supposedly cute rounded shape. I merely stared at it in dismay. I didn’t need to be told that the car was too new to be a valuable antique, and too old to be of much value then. “Surely I have another car inside here somewhere?” I jested, hoping that it was true. “Nope,” said Henri, patting the car’s hood. Grey particles swirled from beneath his hands and danced in the sunbeam streaming through a narrow strip of window nearby. He interestedly used a finger to make patterns in the dust. “This is all there is.” “Hey, I have a great idea,” I said brightly. “Why don’t we take your car to the army camp instead? Where is it? I’d love to see it!” He looked up at me with a serious look on his face. “I already told you, it’s in the workshop. I’m having it overhauled. I’ve only been an official Fighter for about a year or so now, and spent the first few years undergoing tough training. I don’t have much money to spend on cars like you guys do." “I’m sorry,” I muttered sheepishly, giving myself a mental kick for thoughtlessly bringing up an awkward subject. “It’s just that this car doesn’t look like it’s got its engine warmed up very often. Do you think it can still start?” “We’ll never know unless we do it,” he commented wisely. He took out the car keys from his shirt pocket and pried the door open with obvious effort. When he finally had it opened, the musty air from inside hit my nose and made me sneeze non-stop till my eyes turned red and my nose started running. He passed me a thankfully clean handkerchief to use and attempted to start the car. It took him about ten attempts before he finally gave up and began hunting for what I referred to as an alligator-clip wire. I later found out that it was a jumper cable. “What are you doing?” I mumbled, blowing my nose. “I’m going to jump-start your car,” he explained. “See? I’ve started Penny’s Red Retro – she always forgets to take her keys off the ignition, see? - and connected her battery to yours. Just give me a minute and your engine will be running again.” He went back into the Buggy and turned the key in the ignition again. This time the car roared to life and I gave a cheer as Henri pushed the gas pedal on intervals, turning the roar into a crescendo again and again. “So, can I get in now?” I asked, eager to try out the car. It was mine after all. “Uh, I think you’d better wait,” he answered, looking a little flustered. He let the engine idle, went over to Penny’s red car to turn the engine off, detached and returned the wire to the shelf nearby, then used the remote control to open the garage door. He then told me, “I’m gonna take your car out now. I think you’d better follow on foot.” He carefully drove the car out and stopped, waiting for me to hobble out the door before closing it again. I leaned against the garage wall and discovered what he meant to do. He had taken a hose connected to a tap nearby and began to hose the car down. Then he took a rag he had previously taken from inside the garage, wet it with the hose, wrung it till it stopped dripping, then used it to wipe the interior. Each time the rag turned impossibly black with grime, he washed it with water and repeated the process all over again. In the end, he hung the washed rag out to dry, wiped off the perspiration from his face and told me, “Get in, Azure, or we’ll be late for the game.” “I think you’d better change first,” I said, pointing toward his rear end. “Eh?” He was puzzled until he twisted his head back and saw that his rump was grimy black. Then he looked down at his grimy hands and dirty fingernails. “Oh, no! I’ve got to go up and change!” “Do I have time to change, too?” I asked hopefully. The bright tropical afternoon sun had made me perspire, too, and my shirt did not feel dry nor comfortable. “No time, no time,” disputed Henri hastily, dashing toward the mansion. He managed to turn and look back at me while he sprinted across the grass, hollering, “You’d better wait for me in the car, Azure! And turn on the air conditioning!” I followed his advice, throwing my crutches onto the backseat, jumping onto the front passenger seat, turning on the air conditioner at full blast and turning the radio on for company. About fifteen minutes later, Henri reappeared, puffing like a dragon. I saw that he had changed into a lemon yellow collared T-shirt and smart dark jeans. I thought he looked cute, matching the color of the car. He slid into the driver’s seat and revved the engine up. Then, looking backward while casually resting his arm on top of my headrest, he reversed the car in one swift sweeping motion on the steering wheel. With pebbles flying from under the squealing back tires and black soot spurting out from the mouth of the exhaust pipe, he pressed the pedal down hard and off we shot down the driveway toward our destination. About fifteen minutes after we sped by the security checkpoint at the mansion’s main gate, we noticed smoke coming out from under the engine hood. Slowly, despite Henri pressing his foot down firmly onto the gas pedal, the car’s speed dwindled until it came to a complete stop on one side of the narrow lane. “Drat,” moaned Henri, resting his head against the motor horn affixed to the steering wheel and making a wild honking sound blare out. “And I forgot to bring my cell phone!” I saw birds fly off, frightened, leaving the heavy branches overhead swinging with the momentum. I looked all around the heavily wooded area and was glad the leafy branches protected me from the sun, still shining bright at this late afternoon hour. But that also meant help was too far away as we were miles from civilization. “What are we going to do?” I turned to Henri, believing he could see the problem through. “I didn’t bring mine either.” Instead of answering, Henri glanced at his wristwatch and cursed under his breath. “It’s five o’clock already! We’ll never make it on time!” Then he gave me a sidelong look and quietly asked me, “Did you turn the radio on way before I got in the car and started driving?” “Y-yes,” I stammered, owning up. “I thought it was OK.” “Great,” he commented sarcastically, this time resting his head gently against the steering wheel so that the horn wouldn’t sound. “Just great.” He remained like that for a few seconds, then he slowly opened the door and climbed out, stretching his limbs. “Guess I’d better locate the problem, huh?” He went to the front of the car and asked me to open the car hood. I reached over and pressed the button under the steering wheel and saw him raising the steel frontage, smoke spewing out all the thicker. “You OK?” I hollered at him through the rolled-down window. I couldn’t see him from my vantage point, but I could hear him coughing and tinkering with the engine. “Need any help?” “Nah, it’s OK,” came his muffled reply. After some time, he walked up to me and leaned against my side of the door, shoulders heaving. He wiped his perspiring face with the back of his hand. When he turned to face me, I was amused to discover that his face was covered with grimy streaks. “The battery water is all dried up,” he told me frankly. “And there’s a loose wire somewhere in there.” “Shall we try walking back to the security post?” I proposed, eyes wide with dismay. “What?” He poked his head in through the window and pointed at my feet. “Sorry to be brusque, but with those legs? No, dear, I don’t think I can carry you that far, either. And letting you stay here alone while I go get help is too risky. I guess I’ll just rummage in the trunk at the back and see what I can find.” “Good luck,” I called out to his disappearing back. I pulled the lever beneath the driver’s seat at his request and the trunk lid popped open. Bored with nothing to do, I slapped at the few mosquitoes biting my arm, then opened the door, took out the crutches and found Henri stooped at the back of the car. “Look what I found,” he finally cried out jubilantly, straightening up and holding a bottle of battery water and a white plastic canister of mineral water as well as a pencil torchlight in each hand. Then he rushed toward the engine. I followed him, and watched silently as he poured all the guzzling water from the bottle into the battery, one hole at a time. Then he refilled the water tank and took out the torchlight while passing it to me to hold. I used it to illuminate the engine parts, dark under the shade of thick green leaves. “Aha!” he suddenly exclaimed, taking the loose wire and plugging it into its appropriate place. Still holding the wire, he turned to me and asked, “You got anything I can tie this up with temporarily? Wire? Tape?” “You know, funny that you asked,” I replied, taking down the hair band I had earlier on used to tie my hair up and putting it onto his outstretched hand. Granted, my current hair level had only managed to reach the nape of my neck. Besides, I normally had no need nor the appropriate length of hair to tie up with, for my hair had always grown at a snail’s pace. But as the afternoon had been exceptionally warm today, I had gone ahead and tied up a small tuft of hair so that it would be lifted away from my perspiring neck. He used the band to tie the wire more securely then looked at me, eyes twinkling impishly. “What were you using this for anyway? You don’t have hair!” “Funny har har,” I replied sarcastically. He laughed, shut the car hood down and walked toward the back of the car. I followed, switching off the torchlight and returned it to him. He took the plastic canister, twisted the cap off and poured some of the water it contained onto his hands. I used the same water to wet the handkerchief he had given me earlier on and told him to be still while I cleaned his face with it. “Ugh,” he said, making a face, but standing otherwise motionless. “You’re using the same hanky you used to wipe your nose with on my face? Gross!” “Shut up,” I said sternly, dabbing at his face even harder. “I only used it to cover my nose to stop myself from sneezing. You saw me.” “How could I see what you were doing when you had your face covered?” he gave a logical question. Angry, I rubbed him even more furiously, and he yelped, “Ouch! Watch it!” The car started without problem after that, and Henri tore like a maniac down the narrow forest lane. We finally reached the army camp at 5.40 p.m. and Henri led the way to the indoor basketball court, all the while hurrying me along. We entered the building and found Skye already waiting for us under a flight of stairs. Was she psychic or what? I wondered as she and Henri propped me up and helped me climb up the stairs to reach the audience seats on the first ground. When we finally went in through the door, a great din welcomed us and many people were cheering and applauding and jumping up and down enthusiastically. The air in the big room crackled with excitement and tension and everyone seemed caught up in the furor. I glanced at the digital scoreboard, found that the soldiers were leading 55 to 54. As we made our way down to the first row where the others had saved our seats, with Penny and Ari looking back and waving at us excitedly, much to the chagrin of the people behind them, I heard Henri comment under his breath, “The game’s gonna turn very soon.” I followed his field of vision and made out Qit and Que discussing something with their three teammates. When they saw us waving at them, Que automatically waved back in reply, a huge smile breaking on his face, while Qit looked up from where he stooped and raised one hand up from his knee to wave to us. All the players on the court seemed exhausted and fatigued already. Ari and Penny squeezed further in to make space for us, with Penny asking us what took us so long and explaining that the commandos had just scored a three-pointer just before we came in and that Qit and Que already had four fouls each against them, and Ari asking everybody to hush and concentrate on the last four minutes of the game. In front of us, the game started again with high speed and intensity. All ten players seemed to play with reckless abandon, giving it all their heart and spirit, even though they were evidently tired out. Henri was pointing out who was playing what position, which frankly resulted in confusing me even more. He also kept whispering commentaries on what was happening down below on the court, as if I wasn’t there to witness it all firsthand, and I patiently listened, tight-lipped, gripping the edges of my seat nervously as I watched them play. There were many botched attempts from both sides, and each time the opposing team failed to score a point I heaved a sigh of relief, and each time they prevented the twins’ team from scoring, I cursed at them for being vindictive barbarians. Like everybody else around me, I was glued to the seat, watching breathlessly as the four minutes stretched out like eternity. During the first minute, the opposing team almost threw in another three-pointer but Qit leapt into the air just in time. Though he didn’t manage to grab the ball, his hand grazed the ball and though it soared on toward the hoop, it bounced off at the final instant. Seizing the rebound was one from the opposition who Penny kept referring to as her “hunky dream guy”. He attempted what Henri informed me as a “slam-dunk”, but screwed up when blocked by Qit’s muscular build and Que’s leaner but equally tall frame. The second minute witnessed Qit getting the ball, and he passed it to a relatively undersized teammate who had wings on his feet and effortlessly sped by giant opposing players in a blur. At the outer edge of the ring, he paused, his stance revealing that he was about to attempt a three-pointer, too. But three mean-faced soldiers came out of nowhere to block him, and he feigned a move as if to shoot for the hoop. The soldiers fell for it, and he nimbly passed the ball from behind to waiting Que’s outstretched hands. Que also tried to score a three-pointer but his ball was deftly knocked from his hands by an opposing muscle-bound fella while he was aiming for the shot. Que, Qit and their teammates glanced at the referee but he evidently thought the ball had left Que’s hands when it was knocked down and refused to blow the whistle. Angered and disgruntled, they had no choice but to go back and focus on the game. In the third minute, everybody in the audience went into fervor, chanting out supportively to their favorite teams. I myself was leaning forward, raptly watching the game with unblinking eyes. On the court down below, the chants seemed to energize the tired players and lifted their spirits up. Though drenched with sweat, their eyes shone bright with excitement and anticipation. Mr. Hunky Dream Guy, guarded by a stern-faced Qit, bounded up under the hoop and tried to penetrate Que and a teammate’s wall defense. Que and Qit kept foiling his efforts until they finally knocked the ball away from Mr. Dream Guy’s slippery-with-sweat hands. In the last minute, with only about fifteen seconds to spare, Que somehow managed to grab hold of the ball and began to dash across the court, dribbling furiously as he ran. Qit raced on ahead and waited eagerly under the loop, outstretched hands ready to grab the ball. Seeing this, Mr. Hunky Dream Guy and friends went between the brothers as an invincible brick wall. While Que continued to dribble at the spot where he stood, deliberating on the next course of action, all of us stood up and chanted out his name, willing him to take the next move, willing him to win. Out of the blue, the swift little guy came up to Que and gestured for him to pass the ball. Que, noticing that the guy was not covered by the opposition, nodded and threw the ball at him. The guy, seeing the taller broad-shouldered opposition coming in to pounce on him, not leaving him much room to maneuver, feinted a throw, then passed swiftly to Qit who was suddenly free. Qit jumped high, slightly backward at a slanting angle, his back arched, his hands poised for the final throw. All of a sudden, Mr. Hunky Dream Guy, who had anticipated the little guy’s fake, leapt into the air in front of Qit, hands spread out above his head to stop the ball. But Qit, who had also read earlier on the opposing player’s intention, responded accordingly by coolly passing the ball in mid-jump to his twin who stood ready beside him. Que caught the ball neatly in both hands while the audience gasped and chanted even louder. He barged his way toward the loop, leapt high up in the air at the same time two of the opposing members blocking his way did, too, evaded their extended arms somehow, and the ball was forced down the loophole as the crowd roared in thunderous applause mixed with disbelief. I cheered so hard my voice went hoarse, grinning proudly from ear to ear as Que the finisher gripped onto the hoop and hung there for a moment before letting go and landing on his feet on the floor below. Henri managed to find the time to inform me what Que’s act had been in basketball slang, but I was past caring by then and let the cheers of the crowd drown him out. 12) Re-introduction We raced downstairs, with me limping the best I could with my arms supported by the able-bodied Ari and Henri, as fast as we could. We threw open the doors to the basketball court on the ground floor just in time to witness the two teams lining up and shaking hands with each other, one group excited, the other looking rather morose. We waited for them to finish before walking up to congratulate the twins, with eager Penny leading the way. Que was the first to turn and greet us with a wide beaming smile and a triumphant laugh. He ran toward us with hands outstretched as if to hug Penny, and Penny held out a hand to stop him. “Oh, phew,” she protested. “You’re dripping with sweat! Go and wipe yourself down with something first before you hug any one of us.” “People don’t sweat,” Que gasped in reply, hands resting on his knees. I saw that his sleeveless T-shirt was drenched thoroughly and some beads of perspiration were actually dripping off his face and onto the floor. “We perspire.” “Excellent play,” congratulated Skye as Qit ambled exhaustedly up to her and they both exchanged enthusiastic high-fives. She then stooped down to unzip the sports bag she was carrying and threw a towel and a bottle of mineral water to each brother. “She’s sort of their unofficial manager,” explained Penny in a whisper. “How was the play, Azure?” asked Que, throwing then draping his towel around his shoulders and taking a swig of the bottled water. “He was afraid you wouldn’t come,” huffed Qit in elaboration as he sauntered up to me. “We almost didn’t make it,” I answered with a laugh. “The car broke down, but luckily Hen was around to fix the problem.” “Yeah,” agreed Henri. “But we’ve gotta send the car to the workshop very soon. There’s no idea till when it will behave.” “How are you feeling now?” Que asked concernedly. “I’m much better now – can’t you see? And your game was simply superb,” I exclaimed, thumping Que on the back. He choked a little and I saw his red face turn redder. “I’m sorry we missed most of the game. We managed to catch the final few minutes, though, and I personally think you guys did great!” “Yeah, well,” shrugged Qit offhandedly. “It’s just a friendly match after all, but we’ve got to convince them that we’re no bunch of wimps.” “I think you proved your point already,” noted Penny softly, watching the five opposing team members, led by Mr. Hunky Dream Guy, walking glumly in the direction of their locker room. “Hey,” yelled Ari suddenly. “This calls for a celebration! Let’s go to the Pizza Palless tonight!” “Let’s!” the group yelled unanimously in reply. I myself nodded my agreement, eager to go to a fast food restaurant after my long stint at the hospital. “Hey, Newcomer,” I ignored the grating voice over my shoulder, forgetting that the nickname belonged to me, before the voice rasped out my actual name, startling me slightly in the process. “Azure, how have you been?” I turned around, and came face to face with the speedy little man, his wet brown hair matted against his head. “Congratulations. I heard you’ve just been discharged from hospital. But say, you do look different from before. Must have been the long hospital stay.” “Uh, thanks,” I managed to mumble in reply, shaking his proffered hand, warm and damp, hesitantly. “Congratulations to you, too, for a game well-played.” “This man here is Ryo Reran a.k.a. Greased Lightning,” introduced Henri, putting an arm around the grinning man who shared the same height as me. I had a feeling that Henri had his reasons for introducing us. One was probably to remind me that I had previously been well acquainted with this guy. The other was to inform Ryo that I had lost my memory and warn him to mind his words. “We used to work together in the Ministry of Defense, same as Bulk and Beatnik over there.” The two tall guys he had gestured to came forward and shyly said hello. “Well, it’s nice meeting you,” smiled Ryo as he steered the other two toward the door leading to their locker room. On the way out, the three exchanged jubilant high-fives with Que and Qit. “Great game, compatriots! We were victorious! And we really showed those commandos we’re made of sterner stuff. But ‘nuff said; we’ve got to go.” Turning back toward me, he yelled out, “Take care now! Hope to see you soon!” “Bye!” I waved at his disappearing back. In the midst of friendly banter going on around me, I glimpsed somebody catching up with Skye and involving her in a seemingly intense conversation. He had his back turned toward me, and despite my better judgment, I walked up to the duo and stood behind them, waiting for Skye to notice me and introduce us. She finally noticed me and beckoned me to come nearer. I came closer but when the man opposite her swung around and recognition dawned on my face, my instinct to back away came too late. “Azure,” she called out to me, her tone curiously diffident, gesturing toward the man standing beside her. “This is my husband, Dark. Dark, you remember Azure, don’t you?” Not knowing what to do, I saw his hand coming toward me and offered mine in return. But instead of a handshake, Dark demurely brought my hand up to his lips for a soft lingering kiss. I heard the others turn deathly silent around me as I myself stood there, frozen, not truly believing nor comprehending what was going on. Slowly, Dark lifted his face and his brilliant dark eyes held mine in a mesmerizing gaze. “H-how do you do?” I managed to stammer in the end, but had no energy to pull my limp hand away from his cool strong grasp. “It’s a pleasure to finally meet you.” “The pleasure’s all mine,” he whispered in my ear, his hand still holding onto mine, pulling me closer against my will. “I’m sorry. I didn’t realize you were out of the hospital, or I would have come visit you at once.” “Whoa, wait a minute,” Que suddenly roared, coming between us and forcefully pulled our hands apart. Upon disengaging my hand from Dark’s, I suddenly felt as if my world was spinning and almost fell down to the ground had Que not grabbed me protectively. “What on earth do you think you’re doing, coming onto her like that?” Dark’s reply was a mere stare. “I think you’d better leave,” Penny was telling Dark, but hot-tempered Que pushed her aside. “You’d better go back to that hell-hole you just crawled out from,” he shouted. “I have no time for young upstarts,” was Dark’s gruff answer as he curtly turned and walked away. “At least take your wife with you,” hollered Que angrily, his hands still gripping my shoulders as Dark unperturbedly went toward the door. “That’s enough, Que,” said Qit quietly, putting a restraining hand on his younger brother’s shaking shoulder. Que’s rage subsided and we all watched silently as Dark walked out the door, his face calm and unconcerned. Qit then let go of Que and I turned around to watch him put a sympathetic hand out instead to a tearful Skye. All of a sudden, I felt bad and more than slightly embarrassed. I felt that I shouldn’t have extended my hand out in the first place, and felt that what had transpired was partly my fault. I prayed that the ground would split up and swallow me whole, but it stayed as it was. “Tell you what,” said Ari brightly, breaking the awkward silence. “Henri, you said something’s wrong with Azure’s car. I’ll go get the tow truck and take it to the nearest workshop. Ask the others; see if they can offer you a lift home.” Henri threw the car keys to him and he abruptly waved goodbye then made for the door. “I’ll take Skye home, then,” Qit offered in a whisper meant not to be heard by the person concerned. “I don’t think she can drive in this condition. We’ll just leave her car here. She can come get it tomorrow if she wants. Que?” “Oh,” Que started, meeting Qit’s meaningful gaze. Qit also waved goodbye and steered poor Skye out the door. Que in the meantime turned toward me and told me not to take heart. “Oh, yeah,” he added nonchalantly. “And what if I drove you home, Azure? I’ll just take a minute and then I’ll be ready.” “I’ll come with you,” Henri volunteered, looking at Que, even though nobody had asked him. Que gave him a funny kind of look before answering, “I’m sorry, but there’s not enough room for three in my Z-Star.” Henri walked up to Que and I heard him whisper slyly in Que’s ear, “Admit it: you planned this from the start, didn’t you?” Que just stared at Henri with big incredulous eyes and gave what was supposed to be an innocent laugh. “Whatever do you mean?” “All right, Henri.” Seeing that the others were otherwise preoccupied, Penny had relented. “I’ve decided: you can come with me.” “Oh, bother,” Henri rolled his eyes up desperately. Then he turned to face Que. “You sure there’s no room in your car? In the trunk, even?” Then he turned his big doleful eyes at me and pleaded, “Please help, Azure. Talk Que into it. Please?” To this, Penny boxed his ears soundly, chiding him, “Don’t you know a dozen men would have died to be in your place? Think about it. Think how lucky you are to be the recipient of my compassion. Now, you just wait here while I go get the car, OK? I’ll be right back.” She left us and Que also did the same, asking me to wait with Henri on the bench nearby. He jogged toward the locker room, and Henri and I went to sit on the bench. “Does Penny often talk like that?” I asked curiously, slouching down, elbows on my knees supporting my chin. “Sometimes,” Henri confided. “But most times she can talk her head off, and when it happens, man, is it scary.” “But she is very pretty,” I observed shrewdly. “Yes, she is,” Henri answered, snickering. “Pretty talkative.” “No,” I said, not entirely understanding why I was getting irritated with his dim-witted replies. “What I mean is, have you noticed how men gape at her whenever she walks by?” Henri kept quiet before answering, “I’ve seen lots of men do that to Skye, though.” I sighed in exasperation and moved on to another subject, “Have you noticed how Que is different from most men?" “How so?” Henri raised an eyebrow up interestedly. “Well, like he’s so particular about hygiene when most men I know seldom do. Even Qit has gone off with Skye without changing first.” “For somebody fresh out of hospital, you sure are observant,” was all Henri complained, putting both hands behind his head and rocking to and fro. “But I sure hope Skye’s alright,” I prayed loudly. “She’ll be OK soon,” promised Henri. “How can you be so sure?” I countered, not entirely convinced. “Well, it’s happened before,” was all he said back. “What do you mean, it has happened before?” I pressured him. “Well, I guess when the proper time comes, Skye will decide when to sit down and have a girl-to-girl talk with you,” he gave a highly probable answer. “Then all will be revealed to your teeny weenie mind.” “I don’t have a teeny weenie mind,” I roared, swiping at him with both hands. He nimbly moved out of the way before any hit could land on him. “Really?” he asked back. “I thought when they performed brain surgery on you it was either because your brain cells were mightily depleted and needed to be refilled, or that you had lost the brain completely.” “I only lost my memory, you dope!” I lunged at him, and again he dodged easily. “Idiot! Imbecile! Dodo!” “Cat got your tongue?” he asked cheekily when I paused for breath. “Or have you run out of vocabulary already?” “Argh,” I gritted my teeth and gave up on him. I instead took a while to reflect on his words earlier on, then remembering Dark’s biting remark to Que’s outburst, asked, “By the way, how old is Dark exactly?” “Fifty something, I think,” answered Henri seriously. I stared at him and prepared to punch his shoulder. “Stop pulling my leg! He looks just about our age!” He avoided the punch easily and replied earnestly, “I’m not. Why don’t you go ask Skye if you don’t believe me?” “OK, I will,” I replied tartly, taking up his dare, still unconvinced that youthful-looking Dark was fifty. “OK then,” he said, evidently bored with the subject. But I couldn’t stop thinking about the enigmatic Dark and this prompted several questions to surface. “How come he doesn’t take better care of Skye?” I finally asked him. “Doesn’t he realize he’s lucky to have her? And why is he such a horny old goat?” Henri moaned exasperatedly and asked me back, “Look, why don’t you drop this accursed Dark subject for a change?” “But why should I?” I asked again innocently. “Because,” he sighed, “you’re beginning to give me the impression that you’re interested in your own twin’s husband.” I stared at him for a while before replying, “Skye’s not my real twin.” “See?” Henri smacked his forehead in agitation. “What did I tell you? Stop talking about him, period. You’re only going to make it appear as if you’re the one chasing him. You wanna cause total havoc?” “I’m sorry,” I whispered softly, afraid I had hurt his feelings. He turned his back on me and merely grunted. “I don’t mean to wreck Skye’s marriage, or anybody else’s for that matter. I’m just curious, that’s all. It’s not like I’m after Dark or anything.” “And out of curiosity also,” Henri questioned, turning again to look at me. “Let me ask you this: what happened just now? Why didn’t you let go of his hand? Can you imagine how Skye must’ve felt?” “I-I,” I was flustered, unable to answer. “I don’t know.” Again he snorted and turned away from me. I felt ashamed, but pushed on, “It’s just that when he touched my hand, I felt all tingly inside. Hmm. That’s the best description I can come up with. And when he gazed at me I couldn’t tear my eyes away from his. It was almost like his eyes were, I don’t know, hypnotic or something. Don’t laugh. I know it might sound corny but it’s true!” “I believe you,” Henri seemed to have suddenly acquired a headache and was frowning and massaging his temples at the same time. “What I tell you now might disturb you, heck, it might even scare the wits out of you. But I want you to be more careful, Azure. Seems he’s not satisfied with getting his hands on only one twin. I’m afraid he might be after you. From what you described just now, I think he might have just used a spell on you.” “What?” I whirled around indignantly. “Stop it, Hen! I don’t like being made fun of!” “But I’m not,” replied Henri gravely. “Listen to me, Azure; hark my words. Dark is bad news; don’t even touch him with a meter-long pole if you can. I think Skye might’ve found this out a little too late. Whatever you do, don’t let him take a hold of you. He’s dabbled in magic before, and in your present weakened state, I doubt you can protect yourself from him using the proper spells.” “You’re right, you’re really beginning to scare me,” I told him, eyes wide. He merely shrugged indifferently. “But tell me one thing: what made Skye say yes to him? When he proposed, I mean? Did he truly love her at all? And did he have a thing for me in the past?” “You said you were only going to ask one question,” complained Henri. He opened his mouth to speak but the sight of something made him quickly snap shut again. For Que had chosen that moment to walk in on us, whistling cheerfully and asking us where Penny was. A second later, the lady herself appeared, telling Henri her car was idling outside. “Azure, I bumped into Ari just now,” mentioned Penny. “He asked me to tell you that everything’s settled and not to worry about your car. Oh, and Que,” she added as an afterthought, winking meaningfully at Que. “He said to tell you that the party is on tonight at the Pizza Palless, and that he expects to see you there at 8.30 sharp.” “Tell him we’ll be there,” replied Que confidently, adjusting the strap of his small sports bag on one shoulder. And to me, he smiled and said, “Come, Azure. I’ll show you to the car.” 13) An Evening Out All four of us walked out together. Que and I waved to Penny and Henri as they entered Penny’s metallic silver Thunderclap, then we slowly made our way to the parking lot at the back of the building. Along the way, I couldn’t help but notice that Que was clad in a light blue checkered shirt and a pair of khakis that looked good on him in a serious way. I decided that his attire was different from the one he wore this morning, and his shirt definitely suited him, and like Henri’s had been, brought out the blue hue of his eyes. When he walked close to me, an agreeable citrus scent met my nose. His proximity made me nervous somehow, and turned my hands clammy. I didn’t like this at all. Upon arriving at the parking lot, I was surprised to see that my ride was a black two-seater and immediately understood why Que had previously told Henri he had no space for three. Que unlocked the door, pulled the passenger side door up for me and helped me into the wide spacious leather seat. Then he went to the driver’s side, chucked my crutches and his bag into the back and started the engine. The engine roared to life. Que paused to insert a new disc and soft slow music tinkled gently from the state-of-the-art sound system. I quietly rolled my eyes, not expecting to see the more sentimental side of this supposedly macho man. Then I braced myself and actually held on to the sides of my seat as we sped off. “How are you feeling, Azure?” he asked. “You sure you’re OK?" “Definitely,” I replied heartily. “I am so glad,” he laughed. “I thought you looked better, too.” “Uh, Que,” I said nervously as we turned left after leaving the sentry post at the camp’s big gates. “I thought the mansion’s that way.” “Azure, honey,” Que looked at me and grinned roguishly. “We have lots of time to kill before 8.30. I thought I’d take you for a drive to Ismet Kelsom, it’s just nearby anyway. That is, if it’s OK with you.” “Heck, of course it’s OK,” I agreed excitedly. I had in fact been looking forward to having somebody take me out for a walk or a drive because when I had been cooped up in the hospital, the evil Dr. Ryan had forbade me from stepping out of the hospital compound. At all. And more exasperatedly, the others back then had thought this was a great security measure and had agreed on this condition unanimously. “You’ve got anything in mind?” “Well, not exactly,” Que confessed, turning into a busy street. “We’ll just drive around slowly and see if anything catches our eye.” So that’s what we did, with me looking out my window and him staring in front and to the side sometimes. By this time, the day had already grown noticeably darker and the clouds above rolled grayishly by. Finally, at an intersection, he nudged at me and pointed to the front. I looked up and saw that he had gestured to a big corner lot multiplex with huge movie posters and flashing neon advertisements displayed on top. “How does a movie sound?” he asked me, his voice suddenly shy. Because he sounded so earnest, and because I really didn’t have any other good ideas at the time, I nodded and agreed that it was a good idea. Once the traffic light turned green, he quickly changed lanes and entered the multiplex’s parking compound by its side. We parked, then Que quickly went to my side to help me out and passed me my crutches. We slowly entered the three-story building and made our way to the ticket stand. “What movie will be showing in about five to ten minutes’ time?” Que asked the girl manning the counter. He glanced at his sporty silver wristwatch and noted that it was fifteen to seven. “Perhaps a movie no longer than one and a half hours, and preferably one with a cineplex on the ground floor.” “Very choosy, aren’t you,” commented the girl with a slight lisp while she scrolled down the pages on her computer, with Que drumming impatiently on the countertop, the simple platinum ring he wore making a metallic sound each time it hit the counter. “Well, there’s only one that matches your description. Gone with the Animals, starts in five minutes.” “What on earth is that?” asked the clueless Que while I leaned my back against the counter and smiled down at an inquisitive-looking toddler holding a stick of candy floss and standing in line with her mother behind us. “Says here it’s a Maranganese computer animation film about animals and it’s supposed to be fun for the whole family,” answered the girl as she squinted over the movie summary on her computer monitor. “Rated G. So now, what’ll it be? Are you taking this or not?” He paused to turn and look at me, silently seeking my approval. Not far behind us, a big man wearing a wide straw hat, bermudas and flip-flops coughed meaningfully, indicating that we were taking too long a time at the ticket booth. “Gone with the Animals is fine with me,” I smiled in affirmation. “You sure?” he asked dubiously, at the same time taking a fifty dollar note from his crocodile leather wallet and handing it to the ticket girl, telling her, “Two tickets, please. With seats hopefully somewhere in the middle, but in the row farthest from the screen.” “I’m sure,” I nodded positively. “Here you go then, sweetie,” smiled the girl as she handed Que the change and the tickets which she tore from the printer. It was only then that I noticed she had two upper front teeth missing. “The best seats available, only for you.” Que took the cash and tickets, wearing an incredulous expression that almost tickled me pink. He then led me further inside the building, his hands fixed firmly on my shoulders, making sure that not one person in the thronging crowd would bump into me. “Are you certain you don’t mind watching this movie?” he asked doubtfully as he steered me along. “The movie’s probably in Maranganese, with subtitles running underneath. I think it’ll be a cartoony computer flick, and may be a little childish, too.” “It’s OK,” I assured Que. “Anyway, I love Maranganese cartoons, that I remember, and to be perfectly honest with you, I have no idea when the last time I’ve watched one was.” “I didn’t realize you felt that way about cartoons,” mumbled Que as we approached the concessionaire. Noticing the hopeful look on my face as I gazed at the popcorn and candy floss stands, he immediately asked, “Would you like some popcorn?” “Yes, please,” I answered happily. I followed him as he strode toward the booth, telling him when he inquired that I preferred mine covered with everything they had. “It’ll go really well with the movie,” I predicted. “You sure you want yours heavily buttered?” he asked, frowning as the white-apron man went about preparing our order. “Why, is something the matter?” I asked back, a frown slowly forming on my forehead, too. ”No, it’s nothing,” he replied, trying to shrug it aside. But when I pressed him, he finally admitted, “It’s just that, well, Penny and Skye are usually conscious about their looks and often opt for unsalted and unsweetened this and that.” “I’m not really concerned about my weight at the moment,” I replied. “Why? Do you think I need to slim down?” “No, no,” he blushed, explaining. “That’s not what I meant. You in fact need to gain more weight. It really pains me to see you so thin, Azure.” “So is that why you’re ordering giant tubs of popcorn for us?” I asked, only then noticing the huge containers the white-frocked man was shoveling our popcorn into. “I know I said I wanted popcorn, but that is way too much for me to stomach!” “No worries,” he told me, grinning. “I’ll finish it for you if you can’t.” “So you guys often go out together?” I instead questioned him interestedly. “Well, not just the three of us,” he replied, taken aback and clearly not expecting this deduction of mine. “In fact, back in the old days, all of us would get together on weekends and go out for movies and such. All of us meaning Skye, Penny, Ari, Qit and us.” “How about now?” I asked curiously. “Now?” He rummaged inside his pants and gave some money to the popcorn man. “Now we’re a little too busy with our own schedules, I’m afraid.” “Here you go,” said the twinkly-eyed man as he handed two tubs of popcorn and two canned soft drinks to Que who miraculously managed to balance the lot carefully in his hands. “Cute date you have there,” the man added, winking pointedly at me. I saw Que’s face change color as he silently left the booth, but I swung around and straightened the facts. “We are not out on a date,” I told the surprised man coldly. “And in future, please don’t just jump to conclusions, OK?” With that I whirled around and slowly made my way toward waiting Que. Our seats were situated in the very last row, and the lights dimmed the moment we sat down. Que put my drink into the cup holder by my side and passed me a tub of popcorn, despite me still insisting that it was too much for me. “It’s a little draughty in here, don’t you think?” Que looked around the almost deserted room with most of the audience, consisting of children accompanied by parents, seated in the center and front rows. He quickly located the problem: the air vent was just above our heads. “You want to move now, before the movie begins?” “It’s OK,” I told him as I settled more comfortably in my seat. “I’ll tell you if it gets too cold, then we can move.” Advertisements and future movie gazettes flashed on the screen for about five minutes, before the feature presentation was shown. The movie starred about a dozen wide-eyed forest dwellers who, faced with the danger of losing their home to illegal loggers, decided instead to go on a journey to seek greener pastures, experiencing many adventures and tribulations along the way. It turned out that Que had been right, instead of badly-translated voice-overs, the length of the movie saw badly-translated subtitles running below near the edge of the screen. But it was an entertaining movie anyway, and I enjoyed it immensely. Even before the middle of the movie, Que had finished his popcorn. Noticing this, I offered him mine but accidentally tipped it all over him when he reached out for it. “It’s OK,” he laughingly whispered to dismayed me as he stood up and brushed the remaining popcorn off his khakis. “Better popcorn than the drink.” The rest of the movie continued uneventfully. Toward the end, the movie’s uplifting, funny and happy tone turned into a more somber mood when, in a flash flood, two of Foxy’s pals were swept away by currents and were drowned. I was so enthralled by the film, the cold draught didn’t mind me at all. Nevertheless, I surprised myself when, unbidden, tears quietly splashed down my face. Que must have noticed, for he drew out his handkerchief from his pocket and silently handed it to me. When I gratefully but ashamedly used it to dab at my eyes with one hand, he gently took hold of the other and kept it in a comforting grasp till the movie’s bittersweet ending. When the lights were finally switched on again, we had to blink for several seconds and adjust our eyes to the brightness. We let the others troop out the exit door first before finally standing up and making our way out. Once outside the cinema and amid the crowd, Que turned to me and asked, “That was a good script. What do you think?” “It was terrific,” I replied, embarrassedly wiping away some tears which still stung my eyes. “Instead of a happy ending, this one has a bittersweet one, and I appreciate it better this way. Makes the story more poignant, more realistic. And so much effort went into this production! The story has many layers, too, and on a deeper level, you can see how man has compromised his role as guardian of earth and how the strong exploits the weak. And the animation – flawless! It was so cleverly done that the movement never jerked at all! The art made everything so alive. If one would only examine it closely, one would realize the characters all stemmed from the heart, and they were all delightfully well rounded. The creator must have been a genius, no doubt about it. Even if his name isn’t all that familiar to me. Say, am I talking too much?” “Not at all,” he replied with a crooked smile. I had the suspicion that he had been staring at me while I was animatedly talking away. “Good,” I said, then kept quiet. He was silent, too, as both of us ran out of ideas to discuss. “So, did you enjoy it, then?” he rephrased his previous question, gripping my shoulder so that the suddenly surging and jostling crowd would not shove me away from him. “Why, I haven’t enjoyed myself this much for a long, long time,” I told him truthfully. Outside, nighttime had come. Rain began to drizzle as we hurried toward the car. Once inside, Que started the engine and observed that it was already 8.20 p.m. He let the engine idle, his reluctance to go anywhere else painfully evident to me. “I don’t really feel like going,” he finally confessed, looking straight ahead and avoiding my eyes. “To tell you the truth, I really had a lot of fun today, too, the most I’ve ever had in you wouldn’t believe how long. Wish it wouldn’t have to end so soon, though.” “It’s not ending,” I told him softly. “It’s just the beginning. We’re gonna go get a pizza after this, aren’t we?” “Yes,” he admitted with difficulty. “It’s just that the others will be there, too.” I laughed as warning bells sounded in my head and said to him, “Look, the others’ main reason for this is to celebrate your win today. And it’s very important to them that you, as one of the main cast, be present to show your full appreciation of their efforts.” Que merely sighed, shaking his head slowly. “I just don’t feel like going. They’ll understand. They’ve got to.” “I disagree,” I retorted. “I’d be very angry if I had organized every detail and discover at the last minute that you won’t be coming after everyone’s finally gathered and waited for you for like about an hour or so.” “Well, why don’t we wait until we’re an hour late, then?” he asked hopefully. This time, I was the one to shake my head. “Not a practical choice. Think again.” I saw his head droop sadly, then he looked up and began drumming his fingers wistfully against the leather dashboard. “Besides,” I tried again, “aren’t you tired? Or famished? After the long game you played?” “You know, I am a little tired,” he confessed, looking at me through bleary eyes. Then he laughed, when his stomach growled so loud he knew I had heard it. “And more than a little hungry, despite the popcorn we just had.” “Well, what are we waiting for?” I urged him. He only blinked at me, still somewhat undecided. “Look,” I told him simply. “I personally had a great time myself, but it has to come to an end. Isn’t that the way of the world? It’s not going to be the last time we go out, you know. There’ll be other times in future.” “Promise?” he asked with big imploring eyes. “Of course I promise.” “All right,” he said, looking somewhat relieved, and put one hand on the steering wheel. “Ready to meet the others now?” he asked as he went into reverse. “Ready,” I replied, and he accelerated toward the Pizza Palless. 14) The Pizza Palless On the way there, I asked Que why Pizza Palless was named that way. Que explained that according to the proprietor, he had at first wanted to name it Pizza Place, but a pizza joint down the block had opened before his did and taken the name as well. Then he decided to call it Pizza Palace instead, but a friend had advised him not to as there had been another joint downtown bearing that particular name. In the end, he opted for Palless to show that he was unparalleled and no rival pal was up to par with him. Indeed, Que insisted that they had tried quite a lot of pizza joints but this was the best so far. That was why the gang preferred the eatery above all others. When we parked in front of the restaurant, we saw that Penny’s car was already there. Que also pointed out to me Ari’s red Real Rayce adventure recreational vehicle and Qit’s black Speed Racer with the detachable top. It had stopped drizzling by then, though there were tiny puddles here and there on the tar road. We walked out of the car and slowly made our way through the restaurant door. Inside, the restaurant was only half-filled with patrons. Somewhere in the middle, we saw that the others had joined two tables together and that everybody was already seated down. I noted that Ari had brought his wife along, but Skye was sitting alone at one end, with no Dark in sight. Qit, his seat next to Ari’s, had evidently showered and changed into a beige V-neck sweater and corduroy jeans. He had also had enough time to shave his afternoon stubble. When the others spotted us coming in, they immediately stopped chatting and waved to us as if we hadn’t seen them already. “You’re five minutes late,” hollered jovial Ari, his wife beside him nudging in a bid to remind him to try and be civil. “Come sit here,” proffered Henri, patting the seat next to him. Que helped me sit then slid into the chair next to mine. I smiled at excited-looking Henri and observed that though the others had changed their usual dining seating arrangement, he still chose to sit next to Penny, who at the moment was nearby him at one end of the table, opposite from Skye. “Have you guys been waiting for us long?” I whispered to Henri. “Nah,” he replied. “Ari was just trying to make you guys feel guilty.” “We haven’t ordered yet,” explained Penny, shoving the printed-out menu to me. “What are we having? Any suggestions?” “Why not let the stars of the day decide?” Ari proposed, leaning one elbow casually on the backrest of his wife’s chair. At his suggestion, Qit and Que exchanged looks. Both didn’t seem to have a clue on what to order. “I’m cool with whatever you guys order,” said Que with a shrug. Qit nodded in approval. “In that case,” smiled Penny, taking the menu back from me, and it was evident she had already had everything planned out already, “we’ll order a personal pizza of each type.” “With extra cheese,” I begged. “With extra cheese,” she agreed. “And lots of mushroom, too,” slurped Henri. “No anchovies for me,” declared Qit. “At least one thin crust pizza for Joy,” said Ari, settling back more comfortably in his red-and-white chair. “And lots of garlic bread and fried chicken wings – don’t forget the sauces - and mushroom soup.” “Potato crisps, too,” decided Que. “And ask them to dab a lot of mayonnaise on the pizza.” Penny glared at Que and repeated the order for verification, “Mushroom, no anchovies, one thin crust and all side orders available. But no mayonnaise. If you want I’ll buy you a jar at the grocery store on my way back, Que.” “I had no idea you were such an aspiring waitress,” Henri whispered admiringly to Penny. She shot him an unfriendly look and challenged him, “Say something like that again and you’re walking home tonight, buster.” Ari whistled to get the attention of the waitress taking orders at the next table, and gestured for Penny to repeat the order to the girl when she approached them. Penny looked up at the waitress and repeated the verified order. That done, she immediately looked around and asked what we wanted to drink. “Strawberry milkshake for me,” I replied quickly. “Make mine chocolate milkshake,” said Que after a moment’s decision. “And one big banana split.” He dismissed Penny’s frown with, “Hey, so sue me. I’m darn hungry.” “Oh, waitress,” called out Ari, looking at his wife who nodded. “Make that three banana splits. I’ll have a Cola, the original, not the Diet type, and she’ll have cold milk.” “I think I’ll opt for hot cocoa,” said Qit. “Coffee for me,” Henri told the waitress. “Gianese tea,” piped in Penny. “Milk tea,” said the quiet Skye. I looked at her from across the table and saw that she appeared calmer, but more subdued, too, exchanging only a few words now and then to Joy who sat nearby. The waitress left with the order scribbled on her notebook and a pencil above one ear. She came back three times a few minutes later, the first time to deposit two tin buckets filled to the brim with huge groundnuts with a bang on the table top, the second and third times to pass the drinks around. Conversation flowed around as usual, and I noticed more than one patron glancing at our boisterous group. I kept glancing at Skye, but she seemed to be distant from the group that night, preferring instead to wallow in whatever emotion she had alone in one corner. Although I had a great desire to approach and apologize to her, I decided that the time wasn’t right and allowed her the chance to savor her privacy and solitude. “So, what were you guys up to today?” Penny was asking Que slyly, leaning over and inquiring somewhat loudly so that he, as well as everyone else, could hear. “I didn’t see you going back to the mansion after the game.” “What is it to you anyhow?” Que answered, looking down at the milkshake in his hand. I saw the ends of his elfin ears turn pink and wondered what Penny was insinuating at. Even Henri was inspecting me with a strange expression on his face as Penny continued, saying, “I know it’s none of my business, but heck, Que, everybody here is curious to find out.” I looked around the table and saw that all were looking at us interestedly, ears cocked attentively even though they pretended to be chatting to one another. But Que only kept quiet, taking a slight sip then using the straw to stir his drink. “Cool it, Penny,” warned Qit. “Aww, it was just a harmless question,” she responded innocently. I couldn’t take it anymore, and finally blurted out what I thought was a neutral answer, “We went to catch a movie.” There was sudden silence as everyone stared at me in surprise. Henri smacked his forehead in a way that said You’re an idiot and I heard Que choke beside me. “Why, did I say something wrong?” I whispered urgently to Henri, worried about negative implications my answer might have contained. “No,” Penny replied instead. “It’s just that I’m surprised you guys had enough time to grab a movie. What was it called again?” “Gone with the Animals,” I replied unsuspectingly. “It’s a Maranganese computer animation movie.” “Ah,” Penny chuckled. “Gosh, Que, I never suspected you were so much into cartoon - oops, sorry - computer animation flicks! Was it a romantic one, by the way?” I saw red-faced Que’s hand shake as he abruptly stood up. He would have walked out the door had I not put a tentative but restraining hand on his left arm. At the same time, Qit was chiding Penny and asking her to pipe down a little, which she thankfully complied. Conversation continued like normal, even after the soups, main course, then the desserts came and I was astounded to witness how much the guys could eat. Nothing else happened, and everybody commented that the food was delicious, though there was a bitter taste in my mouth all throughout dinner and I couldn’t wait to get back home. Even Que was subdued and looked rather dejected. I remembered being told that my thinking ability was somewhat slower than before, and that I didn’t really understand the underlying message Penny seemed to be hinting at. But that did not stop the queasy feeling in my stomach, and made the night pass painfully slow and uncomfortable to me. Only Henri’s reassuring pat on my left hand and Que’s supportive presence, though silent, next to me made me stay and put on a cheerful mask. Finally, after Ari had finished the last morsel and burped his last burp, much to his wife’s chagrin, everybody chipped in whatever change they had to pay the bill, though they insisted that Que, Qit, Joy and me not pay. It was only then that Skye opened her mouth and spoke directly to me. “I’m sorry I forgot to brief you on your financials, Azure,” she said in a low tone, her eyes seemingly still downcast. “I promise I’ll do it as soon as possible.” “Take your time, I’m in no hurry,” I told her and to my surprise, she returned my grin with a wry smile. “I know you’re busy right now. We’ll do it whenever you’re free.” I was relieved; her smile seemed to signal that everything was all right again between the two of us. “Fancy seeing you here, Que,” the sudden whiff of strong spicy perfume wafted up my nose even before the cooing voice reached my eardrums. Surprised, like everybody else around the table, I turned to look up at the tall woman with golden locks cascading down the back of her fitting blouse. She had one hand on Que’s headrest and was about to whisper something in Que’s ear when she saw me. Her jaw dropped in shock, her face changed color at the sight of me and her hands fell limp beside her. “Hello,” I said to her, not knowing how to interact with someone gaping at you like that. “You’re back!” she gasped, and I looked around to see if anybody had the heart to explain it all to me, but discovered that everybody was still trying to get over their initial surprise at her sudden appearance. “But, nobody told me!” “Yes, I’m back,” I told her. “From the dead, one might say.” She laughed nervously at this little joke, covering her mouth with one twitching hand. “And you are?” I asked her politely. She seemed amazed that I didn’t know her identity and because she was looking down at Que expectantly, Que quietly supplied the answer, “This is Lawles. She’s presently undergoing training and will join us as a Fighter soon.” “Oh, really?” I said interestedly. “Yes, just as soon as I pass my Masters exam,” she replied, finally seeming to revert to her prior relaxed state. “Masters?” I asked wildly, whirling to look at Henri quizzically. “To be a Fighter,” Henri explained patiently, “one should receive the proper amount of education and have paper qualifications up to the level of doctorate.” “You mean, I can be called a Dr.?” I asked him incredulously. He nodded. “Believe it or not, you’re a brainiac, or used to be. I only got my Masters last year, that’s why I became a full-fledged Fighter only recently. At the moment, you can say that I’m doing my practical, and will graduate to more challenging tasks once I sit and pass my Ph.D. in another three years.” We all trooped outside after that, leaving Lawles to order her dinner alone. I went from one car to another saying goodbye to everyone, until only Que’s and Qit’s cars were left. I looked back and caught sight of Que and Skye standing near the doorway, seemingly deep in discussion. When I approached them on my crutches, I heard Skye give Que a final warning, “You of all people should know what’s best for her. Remember not to overdo it, Que. Don’t push too hard.” She then whirled around, waved goodbye to me, and walked toward Qit who was already waiting in his car. Both Que and I waved to the duo and watched the car disappear before ambling slowly toward Que’s car. “Que,” I began as I settled myself more comfortably into my deep seat and put the seatbelt on. He had been quiet all this while and at the moment was looking up at me, seemingly startled from a reverie. “I just wanted to apologize for whatever happened back there.” “That’s OK,” he told me, shrugging it off. “Penny’s always rankling people up. She knows I’m kinda touchy and, well, what you might call quick-tempered, and she often uses this to her advantage. You’d think I’d be used to it by now,” he added glumly, looking off into the darkness. “I know she was just joking,” I smiled, trying to lighten the somber tone inside the car. “Everybody can see that. She didn’t mean anything by it. Don’t let it get to you, Que.” He looked at me with those big doleful eyes and murmured, “If only you could remember the past, Azure. Then you wouldn’t be saying the same.” This time I was the one to be rankled, stating, “Well, it’s not like I lost my memory on purpose, you know.” “I’m sorry,” he whispered, still wearing the same sorrowful eyes. “Stop this,” I told him. “I don’t like your tone. Let’s go somewhere cheerful and have fun. What place’s still open at this hour of the night?” He switched on the engine and we both glanced at the car clock. It was almost half past ten. “What do you have in mind?” Que implored. “I don’t know,” I admitted. “I don’t feel like catching another movie. How about just driving along and showing me the sights? You know I haven’t been out for ages!” He stared at me for a moment before answering, “We could, but it shouldn’t be a long drive.” “Why not?” I questioned back inquisitively. “Because,” he sighed, “the others left specific instructions not to.” “Are they always dictating you what to do?” I asked angrily, remembering how Dr. Ryan had especially singled Que out the day I was discharged and gave him what I believed now to be some sort of warning. “Sometimes,” he admitted. Then he turned toward me and peered deep into my eyes. “They all want you to be better soon. That’s the main thing. They’re worried about you.” “But shouldn’t I know what is good for me, and what isn’t?” I cried. “Did Skye ask you to take me home immediately just now?” “Sort of,” he admitted. “It’s just that you might still have the flu, and she didn’t like the idea of you being out on a cold night like this.” “Yeah, right,” I replied sarcastically. “For the last time, I’m alright now! I don’t have the flu! OK?” He merely looked at me with solemn eyes and I immediately felt bad for the outburst. “I’m sorry,” I said dejectedly. “I know you are,” he whispered. He reached out as if to touch my hair, but had second thoughts and pulled back. I raised an eyebrow but decided to act as if I had seen nothing. “You remember Dr. Ryan from the hospital?” I asked him. “Uh-hmm,” replied Que, nodding. “Did he lecture you the same way the others did?” I prodded him. “More or less,” he answered truthfully, giving me a slight lopsided smile. “You have a long history of being accident-prone, and the hospital staff weren’t too keen on having you back with a broken ankle or something.” “Really?” I was surprised but was pleased that Dr Ryan had at least been practical during that one moment in time. “Yes,” replied Que, earnestly. “And he especially wanted me to be careful whenever I’m around you because I have a rep for making bad decisions. That’s another reason why the others are constantly monitoring me, so that I won’t hurt you unintentionally.” “Oh,” I replied, finding the answer satisfactory, my anger gone like a wisp of smoke. “C’mon, Que. I’d never believe you’d have it in you to hurt me intentionally.” “Of course not,” he emphasized. “Never intentionally. What do you take me for anyway?” “Not a fool,” I replied after a moment’s deliberation, and he gave me that funny half-smile again. “Yeah? So, do you feel much better now?” he inquired, putting his hands on the black leather steering wheel. “Lots,” I told him. “Great,” he responded, putting one foot down on the gas pedal and slowly making his way down the street. “I think the others won’t miss us much in another fifteen minutes or so. I have someplace special to show you.” He wouldn’t tell me where he was taking me but kept his hands locked on the steering wheel and his eyes glued to the windscreen in front of him. We drove on until we finally came to a narrow private road and he carefully drove up the steep incline. The view near the top of the hill was spectacular, and I could see miles and miles of buildings and car lights flickering softly in the distance, a man-made starry ensemble under the shine of the huge round yellow moon. Even the air felt fresher there and the welcomed night wind teasing my hair and clothes felt like it was embracing an age-old friend. I noticed one or two cars passing by our parked car and turned up to Que’s contemplative figure standing beside me, inquiring why we, like the other cars, didn’t go all the way up to the hilltop. But he staidly refused to budge without giving adequate reason, just that he preferred the view from the spot we stood because it was more personal and private. 15) After Returning Home My first intention upon reaching home, some time after eleven, was to throw myself onto my comfy bed and sleep away like a log. Unfortunately, I found that sleep wouldn’t be coming for some time later, for both Henri and Skye had been up waiting for me, the latter to discuss and return my legal documents and the former, only God knew what he wanted to ask me. They both trooped in with me into my room, and while I lay on my back on the bed, my feet both still planted firmly on the ground, wishing for privacy and the opportunity to catch some shuteye, Skye took out some documents from a file and spread them out on the carpet. I had no choice but joined her on the floor, hugging a cushy pillow against my chest with the hope that they’d get the hint, but they didn’t seem to. Henri was sitting on the king bench, looking down at us with a bemused expression on his face. All in all, it was a decidedly educational eye-opener. Skye apologized because she might be too busy the days after that to discuss my papers with me, and had wanted to get it over and done with as soon as possible. I had to agree on the logic behind her reasoning, and was mightily glad to finally find out how much I was worth exactly. “I can’t give you all your documents as you’re not exactly the most organized person here, plus the fact that you kept hopping from one place to another like a bunny,” Skye semi-complained, and I had to smile at her description of me. “But these were all the documents we could find in the mansion that are relevant to you.” She then proceeded to give me my bankbooks, credit card and bank statements as well as deeds. I discovered that I had my own house about an hour’s drive away, as well as some estates and homes strewn all over Mucia Pasifika, some rented out, some cared for by caretakers, some left otherwise abandoned. Skye also reminded me that the value of the properties had increased over the years. I tried doing a fast mental arithmetic, but stopped due to a headache when I passed the 5 million Melizian dollars mark. “I know you still have the credit cards left in your wallet when you were found in the desert,” she was telling me patiently. “But they’ve all expired. I suggest you call your credit card issuers, make sure that nobody had misused the cards – just in case, and also your banks to check the status of your accounts, whether they’ve been frozen or otherwise OK.” I looked closely at the bank accounts and was surprised that the latest transaction I could determine was made more than three years ago. As Skye rambled on, I took the chance to ponder it was strange that this was so. After all, the others claimed I had only been missing since some time last year, so what exactly had I been living off before that? Even with the government-funded residence and amenities, surely I needed money to support my lifestyle – probably an expensive one, judging from the designer labels in my closet. “By the way, how do we receive our paycheck?” I asked, stifling a yawn. “You know, like do we get a check? How often? Every fortnight?” “Every month’s end, actually,” smiled Skye. “You’re still on paid medical leave until the first of next month, so by right they should have credited your salary right into your Gov bank account – see, here’s the book. You have to update it, though. If you want, you can also ask them for a new teller machine card then.” “Oh,” I said, inspecting the bankbook. It never occurred to me that the bank books all needed updating. I flushed slightly at the realization of just how disorganized I was, not even updating the bankbooks regularly. “Even the statements aren’t exactly up-to-date,” Skye told me, as if reading my mind, and to my delight, yawned as well. “I guess you must’ve changed your billing address when you moved.” “Moved?” I pressed her, not catching her true meaning. “Where to?” To my intense dislike, Skye did it again: exchanging glances with Henri. Though the glance appeared casual to me, I wasn’t too sure it was meant to be that way. “To one of your houses in Mucia Pasifika, of course,” she told me, and had the audacity to look me straight in the eye. Not exactly a master of body language, I decided I was cornered and had no choice but to believe her on this one. “What else could it be?” In the end, Skye passed the documents over to me and stood up, stretching. She excused herself, claiming to be rather worn out after a hard day, then said goodnight and left both of us, leaving the bedroom doors open. I looked up at Henri on the king bench, and he looked at me. After a moment where neither of us gave in to be the first to talk, I ended the silent debate by going and sitting down next to him. “What is it that you wanna ask me?” I drawled, frowning in a bid to appear more hostile and unapproachable. Perhaps he’d go away then. But Henri only laughed. “Don’t look so serious,” he told me. “I just wanted to find out how your date with Que went. He did go to his room, didn’t he? He’s not like waiting outside, waiting for me to go before pouncing in, is he?” My forehead furrowed as I stared exasperatedly at this foolish boy. I was about to insist that it wasn’t an actual date, but instead I said, “You know, you’re the second one to jump to such conclusions.” And I proceeded to tell him about the popcorn man at the multiplex and all that transpired that evening. There was something in Henri, a kind of charm perhaps, honest and comforting, that made it easy for me to tell him anything. Even now, he was listening with rapt interest, guffawing out at the right places and otherwise prodding me to continue my narration. “He took you where?” he suddenly yelped, interrupting my story. I gave him a cold stare and he immediately apologized. “Sorry, sorry; but this one really took me by surprise.” “I don’t know,” I answered truthfully. “I didn’t ask him the name of the place. It’s a hill where you can see like miles and miles away.” “Oh dear,” Henri was bent double, laughing so hard he had tears in his eyes. “This is priceless! If I’d known what he had planned for you earlier on, I would have teased him mercilessly.” “Please don’t tell anybody what I’ve told you,” I implored. “You promised! Especially not to Que. He might not like the idea that I discuss him with you.” “I promise,” Henri said, wiping off the grin from his face. “And why were you laughing?” I asked quizzically. “What’s the joke?” At this, Henri laughed again and finally managed to quieten down enough to say, “I think you must mean Hangman’s Hill. Noticed lots of cars around, by the way?” “There were a few,” I replied, remembering. “What about it?” “Noticed what they were up to, by any chance?” Henri gave a sly chuckle. I stared at him for a while, finally understanding. “So that’s why he refused to drive all the way up.” “You mean, you weren’t at the hilltop?” Henri asked back. “I thought you were.” “Well, we weren’t,” I stuck my tongue out at him. “We were almost, but not quite. What were you thinking of?” “Oh, you know,” replied Henri lamely. “When two people are left alone in a car under the romantic night sky and beautiful landscape all around, what do you think will happen?” “You beast!” I laughed, trying to conceal my reddened cheeks as I hit him with my pillow again and again. After a while, I sat there contemplating. “Penny for your thoughts,” Henri said. “Penny must be in your thoughts now,” I told him, tongue in cheek. “Because you keep popping her name up in inappropriate places. I did see her drive off with you when we left the Palless, right? She didn’t make you walk all the way back or anything?” “You know how she is,” sighed Henri. “Always talk, no action. She keeps threatening to do this, to do that to me, but she never does.” “Consider yourself lucky, then,” I replied with a smile. “But, gosh!” Henri moaned. “You should have heard her yapping. Yip-yip here, yip-yip there.” “What does she talk about in the car?” I inquired. “I don’t know,” admitted Henri. “I didn’t listen. Ow! But, seriously, she was going on and on about this shopping spree she did or is going to do, about her uncle, about her work, about her boyfriend, about her boyfriend, about her boyfriend.” “And you didn’t like that at all,” I decided, looking at him shrewdly. “Hey,” he answered before grabbing my pillow and pretending he was about to hit me. But I managed to notice a slight blush creeping up as well as the flustered look on his face. “Let’s get back to you and Que, OK? So, you mean nothing happened? You just went to the hill to take in the sight, and he drove you straight back afterward? Is that all? Aw, what a letdown.” “Watch your words,” I pinched him on the shoulder while he squirmed to get away. “Otherwise I’m gonna have to scrub your mouth and your brain clean so you don’t have any more funny ideas.” We were quiet for a while after that, lost in our own thoughts. Henri stared up at the ceiling while hugging the pillow tightly against his chest, me looking down at the floor. “You know,” I started at the exact moment he opened his mouth to speak. But then he gestured for me to go first, so I continued after clearing my throat. “I’ve been meaning to ask you. For some time, actually. It’s just that I sometimes don’t know what to say.” He lifted my face up with a finger under my chin so that I would look into his eyes, and stated rather than asked, “It’s about Que, isn’t it.” “Yes,” I admitted, bending double to hide my blush against my knees. “Do you think I’m imagining everything?” “Why should that be?” he asked gently. “Is it because you think –" “Yes, it’s because I think he might be interested in me,” I admitted finally, abruptly lifting up my tear-stained face. “But why am I crying? Why the tears? I don’t understand.” I sobbed, telling him this was the second time I had cried, the first being at the movies when I was with Que. “It’s because he makes a lot of grown women cry,” Henri replied with a shrug. Seeing that I didn’t get the bad joke, he put out a tentative hand around my shoulders in a bid to comfort me. I took out a handkerchief from my pocket and blew my nose, feeling suddenly lighter, as if a weight had been lifted off me. “Hey, is that my hanky?” I studied the handkerchief before answering, “No, this one’s Que’s. I think I left yours in my car.” “It’d better still be there when your car returns from the workshop,” he growled jokingly. “But what do you think?” I beseeched him. “Sometimes he makes me so uncomfortable. Sometimes I catch him stealing glances at me. Does that mean he likes me? Or does he do that to all the women that he sees?" “I don’t know,” replied Henri thoughtfully. “I’m not him, so I can’t talk on his behalf. But I don’t think he does that to all women, at least not now.” “So, do you think I’m making it up?” I looked at him through teary eyes. He returned my gaze, seemingly contemplative, before slowly answering, “You know what, I don’t think you are. But I have to tell you to be careful here, you’re still a little delicate, you understand. But the real question now is: how do you feel about all this?” I pondered on the question before answering frankly, “I don’t know. I mean, I’m not sure.” “Maybe you need some time to think it over first,” advised Henri. “I don’t want to pressure you, but … please take care of yourself, Azure. If not for the others’ sake, at least for my sake. You know you’re pretty special to me. I wouldn’t want you to make any rash decisions and getting hurt in the process – any type of hurt: emotional, physical, the lot.” “Thanks,” I replied softly. “But, yeah, I know he’s, well, rather cute. And I’m not blind either, I know that Lawles we met at the pizza place has the hots for him, too. I mean, just look at me. How can I possibly beat somebody like her?” He took in my swollen eyes and answered affably, “You do look rotten this very moment. But maybe make-up might make it better.” “Thanks for the vote of confidence,” I told him, voice dripping with sarcasm. “You have to have more confidence in yourself,” he said seriously. “And I really think you’re making good progress. You’ve become more perceptive since you left the hospital, and I can see that your thinking is improving, too.” “Uh, thanks, I think,” I wasn’t sure whether to take it as a compliment or insult. “But how can I get my confidence back? Was I like this before? I have hardly begun to comprehend who I am, I don’t have a sense of identity, so how can I be sure of myself?" “Look around you,” Henri gestured. I followed his hands, not exactly knowing what he meant. “The room. Feel it. From deep inside you. Don’t you feel it calling out to you? Didn’t you feel welcomed the moment you stepped in? This room had been empty for such a long time, but your memories, like photographs, are still embedded in the walls, just waiting for you to come home and view them once again.” I stared at him. What he said somehow made perfect sense to me. I remember being enveloped by a sense of familiarity the moment I laid my head on the pillow the first night I was home. And the vivid dreams – which the others claimed had been part of me – didn’t start until I returned from the hospital. Did this room somehow trigger it? Is the old me in here somewhere, just waiting to come out? “You only need to look within yourself, to know who you are,” Henri was commenting philosophically. “I just have to find myself,” I repeated him, feeling as if my brain was whirring away in my head. “I want to gain back my strength, my vitality, my spirit.” He nodded. “Yup, atta girl. See, you got it already. Wanna go do the physiotherapy thing at the hospital tomorrow?” “Over my dead body,” I declared. Nothing would make me go near that hospital ever again. “Well, you were talking about strength,” shrugged Henri. “I just thought learning to walk as a natural first step.” “Forget about physiotherapy,” I said. “But tell me: how was I before, Henri? I want to know.” He hesitated before answering, “You know, now that you mention it, I have to make a confession: I like you better now than before. I mean you were such a scary girl then – much like Midnight, for the sake of comparison. Now, I don’t know, you’re more mellow, I guess; gentler and calmer, too. I like that in a person.” “What do you mean?” I cried, remembering what Penny had called Midnight. “What - was I a monster back then?” “Well,” he answered thoughtfully. “I wouldn’t put it that way. You were different then, period.” “Different? How?” “You always seemed proud and cocky, so sure of yourself. It was like you were invincible or something, and even I believed that for a while.” “What else?” “”Well, you were stern –" “Made of sterner stuff, is that it?” “Well,” Henri scratched his head. “That, too, now that you mentioned it. Sometimes you’re crude and rude, and you had this mean streak or something in you. Walking with you was like walking with a dynamite which could go off anytime. I remember there was this guy who –“ he paused in mid-sentence and glanced at me. “But no, that’s unimportant. There were always many men around you, too. It was almost like they were compelled to you by the charismatic dark force that emanated from you.” “Huh?” I looked at Henri, nonplussed. He grinned. “Just a line from one of your books over there.” He took in my alarmed expression, and quickly added, “You used to let me read them for reviewing, but then you stopped when I kept criticizing your writing.” “I haven’t gone through them yet myself,” I confessed. “But I intend to, soon.” “Actually, you were quite good,” Henri remembered. “Needs a bit of polishing, a little bit of tightening here and there. Otherwise, quite OK.” “So, you were saying I had many boyfriends?” I tried to steer him back to our main subject. “Well,” he thought it over. “You can say they were boyfriends, but not all were unlucky enough to receive the honor. Most just gazed at you from afar, tongues lolling like dogs.” “Eeyuch,” I cried. “You have a gross way of describing.” “You were quite a heartbreaker back then,” reminisced Henri. “I’ve lost count of how many exactly. To you, it was easy come, easy go. You used to act irresponsibly, and recklessly, too. But I guess you’ve already heard that. So, is that enough for now? Can I stop now?” The conversation was making me mightily tired. Yawning, I stretched out my arms, stood up, made my way clumsily toward the bed and plopped down, face first. I turned around at a scraping noise, and saw Henri already standing as if meaning to leave. “Wait,” I called out to him. “One more question: is Skye psychic?” He grinned and asked back, “What makes you think so? She could be. Why don’t you ask her one of these days?” “I will,” I managed to whisper as I shut my eyes. I heard him bid me adieu and goodnight, then heard him trudge up to my door, where the noise abruptly stopped as if he had paused for something. Drowsily, I made out some of the words he was saying. “Hey, Que, fancy seeing you here. Not asleep yet? No, she’s already sleeping. Listen, if you strain your ears you can hear her snoring away like a baby. Yeah, OK, you, too. Goodnight.” The last memory I had before I drifted into much-anticipated sleep was the sound of the door slamming shut behind Henri. 16) Passing Time It was funny. Upon reaching home, I had been so engrossed with thoughts of Que that I was sure they would keep me awake all night. But no, after unburdening my soul to Henri, I had felt intense relief and had succumbed to a deep dreamless sleep. Well, at least I had no memory of having dreamed that night. The next morning at breakfast, I thought Que didn’t say much all throughout the meal, didn’t even seem to notice that I was dressed in a long cotton white dress for a change. I remembered asking him whether he was ill, but he shook his head slowly, saying no. The others were their usual jovial selves, and I noted the empty chair beside Penny. Oh, well, I can look forward to seeing Ari this weekend. Toward the end of the meal, Ms. Sandy came in with a faxed document for Skye. I saw Skye frowning as she glanced through it, with Penny over her shoulder poring on it as well. “What does it say?” I asked as Que and Henri were clearing the table. Penny was still glued to Skye’s shoulder. “They’re sending us off to this refresher course or something,” replied Skye, looking up and meeting my eyes. “They want us to get ready. It’s starting next week, at Bayou Hola Camp. I know you won’t officially start working till one week plus, but it says here you’re invited. Think you’re up to it, Azure? Wanna come along?” “ But I’m off for a week in Jami Jami Isle then,” Henri cut in before I could answer. “I’ll be handling the Hansen case, and the estimated allotted time is a week or so. I won’t be able to come then.” “You’re right,” said Skye, squinting at the paper in her hand. “Your name’s not mentioned, so you’re excused. Guess they already took your assignment into consideration.” “What’s the training for, anyway?” asked Qit from across the table. “Does it say?” “You know what,” Skye bit her lip, still studying the piece of parchment. “It doesn’t say. We’ll only know what’s in store for us once we get there.” “I don’t know about this,” I said in a doubtful voice. “I mean, I’m still having problems remembering. I don’t know if I’ll ever be ready to go back to work. Heck, I can’t even remember what I used to do!” I saw Skye glancing at Henri before replying, “You can look forward to the camp, Azure. Your job will be made clear to you then, so don’t worry too much about it.” “Yeah,” agreed Henri. “But try to will yourself to walk before then. I know you can do it, if you can only find it in yourself to do so.” I looked at him, hurt written all over my face. He went over and clasped my hands in his. “What happened to you, Azure? You were never the type to give up easily. I know you have it in you, you only need to will it to happen.” “Maybe she needs to continue her physiotherapy,” suggested Qit. Henri noted the look of alarm on my face and quickly answered on my behalf. “That’s OK, Qit. I’ll be her personal physiotherapist.” To me, he turned and said, “I have to go to the Army Camp, but I’ll see you at three. You’re OK by then?” “Sure,” I smiled up at him. “No prob.” “Ms. Sandy will be around if you need anything,” reminded Qit. Then he turned toward Skye and called out to her. “Ready, Skye?” As Skye walked briskly toward him, I remembered she had left her car at the Camp following yesterday’s Dark episode. Soon, I was the only one left at the table. I took my crutches, made my way up to my room, and began going through an assortment of drawings, fuzzy sketches and self-written manuscripts. Sometimes I saw familiar faces in the drawings, but not all the time. As for the writing, I had trouble distinguishing fact and fiction, because sometimes the written accounts resembled a diary but it tapered off into some fantasy tale somewhere in the middle. In the end, I had to put them back, some of the books still left undisturbed, feeling like I was going to come down with a headache. Soon it was time for lunch. I asked Eva to bring it up to me: a meal consisting of lamb shank, mashed potatoes and salad. I drowned it all down with lemonade and returned the tray outside in the corridor. Then not knowing what else to do, I went around the mansion, checking out the indoor pool, library, war room and music room, before deciding to step outside for awhile. I guess I took Alric unawares. He practically jumped when I greeted him and put a hand on his shoulder. He was even more surprised when I requested him to accompany me to Midnight’s stall. But my favorite moment was when Midnight whinnied a welcome greeting and gently took the green apple I had earlier on raided from the kitchen and was offering to him. Alric’s astounded face was priceless, and I was very proud to show how Midnight and I were once more on good terms. Alric even put on the halter on Midnight and allowed me to grab hold of the leash and lead Midnight out the stable. Easily tired out, I led Midnight out near the lake, rearranged some dry huge leaves on the ground and plopped down with a sigh in the shade of a giant tree. I let Midnight graze the green grass in the glade nearby and opened my knapsack. I threw an apple to Midnight who caught it neatly between his teeth and settled down comfortably at the base of the tree trunk, taking out an interesting science fiction anthology Henri had lent me and yet another apple to nibble on. A cool breeze blew in, and that coupled with the straw hat perched on my head and the huge boughs under whose shadows I was sheltered, made me forget the blazing sun outside. I was deeply engrossed in the third story, fascinatingly about a man who discovered his wife was an android, when a shadow fell across the page I was reading. I looked up, squinting slightly as the rays that escaped through the small opening in between the leaves blinded my eyes momentarily. “Hello, Azure,” Lawles’ cool voice floated down the same time her strong spicy perfume reached my nostrils. Near my feet, Midnight pawed the ground and shook himself nervously. “Hi, Lawles,” I replied affably. “Fancy seeing you here.” “Sandy said you might be here,” she explained as she sat down unbidden beside me. “I thought I might as well, try my luck.” I put the book down, the page I was reading brushing against the blades of grass. I just hoped Henri wasn’t very particular about creased book spines. “Is there something I can do for you?” I inquired suspiciously. “It’s nothing, really,” she sighed. I took in her long manicured nails, flawless make up and smart pantsuit. I decided she was almost as pretty as Penny. “It’s just that I want to talk things over with you. You know, about old times.” I shook my head sadly. “I’m sorry. I don’t remember much about the past.” “Well, how much can you remember exactly?” she was asking eagerly. “Very little, actually,” I admitted reluctantly. “Do you remember me? Do you remember Que?” Her last question caused warning bells to ring in my head. “What about you and Que?” I asked back in what I hoped was a naive voice. “Oh, nothing much,” she answered. “It’s just that I hope you remember how close Que and I are. You know, I’d hate it if somebody gets it into her head to steal my boyfriend away from me.” I stared at her, understanding her perfectly. “Don’t worry,” I told her coldly as she got up to go, her message delivered. “I’d never dream of stealing anybody from anyone.” “Good then,” she replied, criticizing. “One more thing: I don’t think I want to come and stay here at the mansion after finishing my Masters. You guys hardly ever mingle with people other than yourselves, it’s no wonder you’re still acting childish while everybody else has grown up and matured.” With a wave, she haughtily walked off, not even looking back. I stared at her for a while before commenting to the stamping horse, “I don’t like her that much, either. She reeks of, I don’t know, garlic? Onions? And I’m not talking about her physical self, too. But do you know this is the second person to accuse me of stealing their men? It’s not like Skye accused me of anything, but I can’t help feeling that she did just that through her silence.” Midnight settled next to me and allowed me to pat him and run my fingers through his hair. We continued in this fashion until Henri came trudging up the path some time later, hollering and waving and huffing away. “Hello to you, too,” I smiled up at his red face. “My dear little Steam Engine.” “Har har,” he said acidly, sitting down next to me and grabbing a red apple from atop my lying knapsack. He took a huge bite out of it, talking between chomps, “I was looking for you all over. Why didn’t you tell anybody where you were going?” “Did you bother asking Ms. Sandy?” I asked him, and when he shook his head, I said, “It figures.” Then I told him about Lawles paying me a visit. “What on earth does that woman want?” Henri was fuming as he heard how Lawles had warned me not to get too close to Que. “She’s either too proud to admit she’s been dumped or too stupid to realize it. Relax, Azure, I know for a fact that Que and she are not an item now.” “But they had something going on between them for a while?” I moaned. “Guess she doesn’t want to take her claws off Que.” “It was just a minor fling,” shrugged Henri. “Don’t worry yourself too much.” “Say, I’m tired of talking about Lawles,” I complained. “Can we talk about something else now?” “Sure,” answered Henri agreeably. “How about a shopping trip to the city? I have to get something for my future assignment.” “You have to change first,” I commented, pointing toward his back. “Your back is all wet.” “No sweat,” he quipped, standing up. He proceeded to unbutton his plain light green office shirt and took it off, exposing a sleeveless white T-shirt underneath. Then he squatted down and wet the shirt with the pond water and wiped it all over his face and upper torso in front of my incredulous eyes. “Ahh, much better. Very refreshing. Hope you’re OK walking around with casually-dressed me today. We’re not going to any suit-and-tie restaurants anyway, right?" I merely stared at him, disbelief written all over my face. “You have muscles,” was what I finally remarked, pinching his arm to be sure. “Ouch,” he yelped, swiping at my hand. “Stop grabbing me! People might think you’re a pervert, or worse. What do you think I had anyway – flabby arms?” “Well, it’s just that you were always into baggy suits,” I replied defensively. “And do we have to go out to Kismet Kesuma now? It’s so hot right now.” “Well,” said Henri, shrugging. “I was thinking of cooling off at the pool. Come join me.” He tugged at my hand but let go and laughed when he read the reluctance written on my face. “What? Too conscious to wear a swimsuit? It’s not like I’m forcing you to wear bikinis anyway. Tell you what, let’s go up to your room. I think I saw a diving suit in there somewhere.” “Stop making fun of me,” I pouted. Then, sighing, I consented, “Alright, K.K. it is, then.” Henri helped me up and accompanied me all the way to the stable. He kept his distance from the biting Midnight, all the way to the other side of me, confessing sheepishly that Midnight had always disliked him. “Maybe he’s being a little overprotective, not happy with the idea of you being too close to a person of Light,” he had ventured. As for me, I tried my best to cajole and coax Midnight into being more obedient but he kept flashing his eyes and baring his teeth menacingly at poor Henri. After promising Midnight I’d take him for rides once my legs were stronger and leaving him in Alric’s care, we trudged up to the main door, where Henri had parked his still idling car. I saw that it was a sensible white Vunata sedan, perhaps five years old. Entering through the passenger door, I saw that the air conditioner was switched on at full blast. Looking around, I was surprised to see that Henri was gone. After a few minutes of sitting patiently waiting for him, he finally appeared with sunglasses he had thoughtfully taken for me from my room, explaining that he had to go upstairs anyway to chuck his wet shirt into the laundry basket. Soon we were speeding off, reaching Kismet Kesuma in no time at all. I marveled at the skyscrapers puncturing the sky and Henri pointed out major tourist attractions to me. During the drive, I tried to get Henri to answer a few more questions. “What ‘stuff’ exactly do you need for your assignment?” He had laughed and tried to brush it aside. “Cool it, Newcomer, you know we’re not supposed to disclose the nature of our assignments to people outside the assigned group, even to other Fighters.” “Even to me?” “Especially to you,” he said softly. Taking in my hurt look, he quickly explained, “Don’t get me wrong. It’s just that you used to abide the Fighter code religiously, always tight-lipped especially to me when it comes to areas of your assigned tasks. But the others do discuss their work with one another, unless they have been expressedly ordered not to disclose any information.” “But what is it exactly that we do?” I implored him. “You never really clarified this to me.” “Well,” he began, hesitating. “I’ll take Skye for example. She’s multi-talented, great at communications, and is often sent in areas where diplomacy and tact is needed. Being a sharpshooter and having the highest I.Q. in the group aren’t so bad, either. It’s rare when she’s not consulted for anything from strategizing to actually implementing them into action.” “You know you’re not making much sense to me,” I pointed out to him. He merely grimaced and scratched his head. “Yeah, well, it is rather difficult to explain to one unfamiliar with the whole concept. You used to say this about yourself: Jack of all trades, master of none. Remember when I said all Fighters were trained in various fields? They threw the whole assortment at us and monitored us, pinpointing our special areas and coercing us to specialize. So what’s the motive behind this? What do you think?” “One wouldn’t want to invest too much time, effort and money on something unless they get something out of it,” I answered slowly. “I’d say the Government wants us to make full use of all the skills we’ve garnered for the sake of the country.” “Clever girl,” smiled Henri. “But not only for Melize. True, we are based here, but as I’ve mentioned before, there are times when we are needed elsewhere and with the Melizian government’s blessing we are sent to all four corners of the globe.” “You were talking about specialization,” I reminded him. “What are our specializations? Are they different from one person to the next?” “Let’s see now,” contemplated Henri as he stopped at a red light. “Skye is the senior, with generally good command of most everything, I’d say. An all-rounder, unlike us sorry losers. Penny’s more into research and technology, you know, like gadgets and stuff. She, sometimes in partnership with Ari, is also great at cracking codes.” “Really?” I asked, surprised. “I can imagine her uncanny talent for snooping and investigating, but technical stuff? Man, she must be more intelligent than she looks.” “Don’t say that,” chided Henri. “Her IQ's even higher than yours.” “Really,” I remarked, flushing. “But then, how about the others?” “If you must know, after me, you have the lowest I.Q. in the group.” Looking at my dismayed look, he laughed. “There isn’t much difference, just one or two marks’ difference between you guys. Besides, it was taken a long time ago as an entry-level test, before you were even welcomed to the mansion. I wouldn’t be surprised to find out there are slight changes if we were all asked to re-sit the test now.” “What about me?” “What about you?” He looked at me quizzically and relented when I glared at him. “OK, OK. Like Skye, you also specialized in communications, but slanting mainly toward languages and literature, you know, stuff like translation and linguistics. You can speak in all major Mucia Pasifikan languages. Other than that, you seemed to have picked up some bizarre skills during your international assignments, like prying locks, detecting counterfeit money, fire-breathing, even, that sort of thing. But as a whole, your general skills are, well, somewhat not up to par with the other five. You can tend to your own wounds, and your survival skills are good enough so you wouldn’t die even when abandoned in the middle of a desert, oops, sorry it struck close to home. But the others surpass you in most areas.” “You really know how to bring me down a peg or two,” I commented acidly as he grinned away. “But tell me, why did they choose me as a Fighter if, like you say, I’m the worst of the bunch?” “Oh, wait,” Henri interjected. “I never said you were the worst of the bunch – did I give you that impression? I am so sorry, then. You see, you’ve also developed a knack for swords by the time you were appointed as Bearer of Darkness. Your swordplay is elegant and exquisite. Watching you slice the Forked Sword through the air was pure poetry – brr! But funnily enough, the mere thought of it still gives me goosebumps. Even Qit who had learned how to yield a sword all his life is only second best. “Besides, I’ve always believed you don’t excel too much because you weren’t motivated enough and felt there was no need to prove yourself to the world. Admit it: I know how your mind works. You’d never be coerced to do something until you see the catch or reward or light at the end of the tunnel.” “I’m not very sure on that one,” I confessed sheepishly. “But it does feel like something’s hit home. What’s a Forked Sword anyway?” I got the idea he was shocked to hear me ask because his grip on the steering wheel tightened till his knuckles turned white before he let out a nervous laugh and glanced my way. “Yeah, well, sometimes I forget you don’t recall things. The Forked Sword is actually your insignia as the Bearer of Darkness. It’s your choice weapon, though no other mortal could use it as it responds only to your psyche.” I took a while to digest everything in when I suddenly found ourselves parked in a parking bay underground. 17) Shopping with Henri I learned from Henri that the shopping mall we were in was called Quadruple Square and was a great place to hunt for bargains. As we tore from one men’s tailor shop to another, Henri confided that he needed to be fitted for a suit in order to attend a dinner event. For some reason, he wanted one in cream, perhaps a pinstriped one, and we had a tough time finding a shop having a relevant cloth satisfactory to me. Being typical Henri, he left the final decision up to me, and didn’t seem to mind me being choosy at all. As we strolled along the corridor of the mall, I turned around and asked Henri, “You know, I’ve been thinking about what we discussed in the car on our way here. Do we use weapons when we work, Hen?” He gazed at my disturbed look before answering, “Azure, hon, that is such a subjective question. Police officers on the street have weapons, even some high-ranking army officials learned to use them though they seldom put it into practice. That doesn’t mean they’re gonna use them today, tomorrow, or any day for that matter. They were trained in handling weapons mainly to prepare themselves for eventualities. They carry them on the street as a precautionary step. Whether they end up using those weapons or not depends on their fate. Besides, why else would the Fighters spend so much time at the Army Camp? So, Azure, does this answer your question?” I nodded before asking again, “But how about the Forked Tongue, uh, I mean Sword? Do you think I could use it again? Where is it anyway?” He looked somewhat troubled, and I had the impression he had already anticipated this question. Anticipation or not, he seemed to be hesitant in answering. “Now, this one’s another subjective question. You see, your sword arm has always been your left one. In fact, when you lost your left hand and had it replaced with a bionic one the first time around, you had a hell of a time adjusting to it. But in the end, you managed to control the sword just as effectively. Now I’m not so sure. Do you think your wrist can handle it? I’m sorry to be so frank, but I happen to think your present left hand seems a little delicate, for lack of a better word.” I inspected the hand in question ruefully. “Yeah, I happen to agree with you. The grip’s still a bit weak, though, much weaker than my right one. But how about the Forked Sword? Where is it? You haven’t explained.” “Well, this one is a bit hard to answer. You see, Azure, the only person responsible for the sword is you and you alone, no one else. So when you claim not to know where it is, nobody else has any idea where to find it then.” “You mean, it’s lost?” I whispered, aghast. “Something like that,” he answered, patting my shoulder affectionately. “Don’t look so glum. I’m sure it’s out there somewhere, just waiting for you to find it.” “So if the Forked Sword is a symbol of Darkness,” I contemplated out loud, “what’s the symbol of Light?” He laughed at this one. “You know, I’m still waiting for that one myself. I’ve only been a Bearer much recently compared to you, and even back then you didn’t get the sword until several years after your appointment. All I know is that your guardian’s Midnight, like Skye’s was Uni when she was in charge of the Light.” “How about you?” I questioned him. “Well, maybe my Vunata sedan, then,” he replied with a straight face. “Yeah, right,” I drawled sarcastically. “But, you know, you mentioned about Penny, Skye and me, but how about the Three Stooges’ specialized fields?” He chuckled at this reference to Que, Qit and Ari. “Alright, as must be apparent to you, Ari’s got great leadership skills. He’s vocal, good at strategizing and giving motivational talks and is a natural in coercing thronging crowds to go his way, much like a hustler cowboy herding his cows.” “Whoa, watch your comparisons again,” I disapproved. “I don’t like the way you easily compare human beings to a herd of cows.” “But isn’t that who we are?” he asked, fluttering his long eyelashes playfully. I tried to punch him on the arm but he laughingly dodged it. “Seriously, Ari is a go-getter, and has a good grasp of the Underground world, including sewers and tunnels. Don’t laugh, you don’t know how many times this knowledge has helped us infiltrate enemy headquarters. Other than that, he’s a genius at math. He’s quite handy with a machete, too. “As for Qit, in several ways he’s luckier than Que. Even though orphaned, he had a sense of heritage and knew something about his family’s history. Growing up at the royal home, he was trained in various arts and skills, in accordance with his task to step in as the new ruler when he came of age.” “But it never came to be,” I whispered softly. “There was a revolution and the monarchy was toppled over. Such is the fate of the countryless Harqis family.” “Yeah, well,” Henri nodded in agreement. “Qit’s pretty well-versed in the world’s history and general knowledge. In fact, you used to call him your Walking Encyclopaedia.” His eyes twinkled merrily when he said that. “He’s pretty good with most traditional weapons, too, especially the broad sword and bow and arrows. As a sniper, he’s got sharp eyes and is almost as good as Skye. Other than that, he also has a good grasp of physics, specifically aerodynamics. That’s why he makes one heck of a pilot, too. “And as for your favorite Que,” he started and ouched when I pinched his arm hard, “though he’s thinner, he’s actually more athletic than Qit. Energetic, never can sit still for long. Much like you in some ways.” He easily avoided another angry pinch and chuckled. “And I’ve noticed, like you, too, he’s more, I don’t know, what’s a word that’s got to do with ‘air’? Airy? Airhead?” He laughed again as he dodged my blows. “You get the idea. Qit’s the more practical one, both feet fixed firmly on the ground, much like Skye. But Que, he’s the opposite. “As everyone knows, he’s a bit hot-headed sometimes, and can be quite stubborn when he’s set his eyes on something.” “Guess Lawles would probably just say he’s determined and a go-getter,” I interjected. “Not much difference actually.” “Well,” Henri continued, “other than that, wait let me think, nope, that’s it.” “What do you mean?” I queried, bushy brows knit close together. “How about his other specialized fields? Knowledge? Weaponry?” “Much like the others,” Henri feigned a yawn. “He is such a playful little fool sometimes, and is too lazy to push himself too hard unnecessarily, much like a certain someone you and I both know.” “Funny har har,” I remarked sarcastically. Then I frowned, thinking. “You know, Hen, if I’m really as bad as you made me out to be, why did they choose me to be a Fighter? I mean, there are a million other candidates out there.” “I’m so sorry,” he grinned good-naturedly, squeezing my hand affectionately and apologizing in his bungling way. “I didn’t mean to make you think you’re useless, or anything like that for that matter. But, yeah, on a personal level, you’re quite a valuable Fighter. You’re resilient, resourceful, dependable, a fast learner with good reflexes and never one to give up easily. “Granted, the Melizian government is highly selective when choosing their Fighters. Evidently, you guys were chosen because of your intellect, mind sets, psychological profile and background. And for effectiveness, they made sure they chose a team that bonds well, that understands each member so well words are sometimes unnecessary. Did you think it was merely a coincidence that all of you were orphans? That most of you have gone through traumatic experiences during your childhood? “Other than Penny, and well, Qit and Que, since they have each other, all of you have not even one relative still alive. Sometimes I get the feeling that the government chose orphans to do its dirty job so that should anything go wrong, there’d be no parents to answer to. Not that it’s ever been proven anyway. But I even think that if you hadn’t been so vocal when recommending me as a prospective Fighter, I’d never have been chosen, just because I don’t share the same things you guys do.” “Whew,” I grinned at him. “So much observation, from the one with the lowest I.Q., too!” He scowled and elbowed me on the shoulder. His abrupt shove almost made me fall. “Hey,” I yelled at him. “Why the sudden push?” “Checking your reflexes,” he said smugly. “Still got a long way to go, kiddo.” “Brute!” His answer had succeeded in irking me further. “No wonder you don’t have any girlfriend, you still have a long way to go before you learn how to behave like a proper gentleman.” “That’s below the belt, Azure,” he warned softly. We walked about in silence before he finally opened his mouth again. “It wasn’t a strong push, was it? Still angry?” “No, it wasn’t,” I admitted, smiling, my anger fading away. “And the answer’s no, not anymore.” We searched for tailors but as I was still dissatisfied with the materials they had to offer, we were stumped on where else to go to. Even when I insisted, Henri adamantly refused to pick just any material available, saying that he wouldn’t settle for second best. Finally, Henri thought of another idea. “Why don’t we go out on the street? There are some more shops all along it, and the price should be reasonable, too.” So we trudged up to the Ground Floor, with Henri taking my crutches and bullying me to slowly climb the emergency staircase with my hands gripping the railings for leverage and went out through the mall’s side entrance. It was already dusk when the din of traffic and exhaust fumes greeted me. We ambled along the pedestrian walk, going into one tailor shop after another. Finally, we came upon a nondescript shop so small we almost walked past it. There, rolled under sheets of dusty plastic, we discovered the perfect white pinstriped cloth of the right texture and consistency for Henri. While the tailor took measurements, I took my time looking around the rickety shop and even found a cloth of soft dreamy white brocade with raised shiny Maranganese motifs which Henri agreed was exquisite. After a moment’s deliberation and Henri pointing out that we could purchase the cloth and send it to a women’s tailor shop later, I bought enough cloth with some to spare, just in case. I had already decided to make out of it a pair of trousers and a Maranganese outer garment all the way down to the heels with side slits to the hips and perhaps big butterfly-like Maranganese buttons all the way down the front. We sent the material to a women's tailor shop next door and I was delighted to learn that, same as Henri's suit, mine would be ready for collection by week's end. "Hungry?" Henri asked as I strove to stop the teasing wind from chasing my dress-hem up too much with one hand, the other hand holding on to my wide-brimmed straw hat to prevent it from being blown away. It was already nightfall by then. "Why don't we go sample some stall food? There are some further up and quite a lot of variety for us to choose." "Sure," I agreed heartily. "I'm famished." But then, when we passed by a karaoke pub, the almost inaudible song which wafted up through the doors opened by people coming in and out made me stop short, ears pricked forward. Concerned, Henri asked if anything was wrong, but I merely gestured that I meant to enter. Albeit his initial reluctance, Henri obligingly followed me in when I assured him I just wanted to take a look and that we were still going to have dinner at the stalls. Inside, I had to walk close to Henri for security as the crowd inside, mostly middle-aged men, jostled their way around us. The air was thick with stale cigarette smoke and through the dense fogginess, I could make out some circular tables with men sitting all around as well as a staircase with a sign directing more private patrons to use the individual rooms upstairs. We slowly made our way through the throng nearer to the small raised circular stage in the middle of the place. There, with his back toward us was the room's center of attention, a microphone in one hand and a television set in front of him displaying song lyrics for him to sing to. The clear voice sounded somewhat familiar, and the heartfelt song that reverberated around the room was a much familiar ballad, a slow sad song about how one's love still goes on even after a loved one's demise. I was surprised to find the singer able to sing the more high-pitched final chorus. Henri tried to whisper something in my ear, but thunderous applause from the patrons, signaling the ending of the song, drowned him out. Then, as the blond swung around taking bows to show his audience his appreciation, I found myself staring disbelievingly up at Que. Henri hastily made me duck, then we made our way out of the stinking place as quickly as we could. Outside, we leaned against the exterior brick wall, panting and wheezing, and a fit of giggles suddenly overcame me. "Gosh," I gasped breathlessly, still unable to stop myself from giggling nervously. "That was Que inside, wasn't it?" "Yeah," puffed Henri. "Man, that truly was something else. I sure hope he didn't see us, though." "I don't think he saw us," I reflected. "But what on earth possessed him to sing to a crowd? I didn't realize he could sing, either." "All of us can sing, you know," reminded Henri. "We took singing lessons. I tried to warn you just now, but I guess you couldn't hear me." "Does he often do this sort of thing?" I asked, for some reason needing to know. "Come here alone to sing his heart out to about a hundred strangers, you mean?" he asked for confirmation and I nodded. "Yeah, I know he does that sometimes. This place is known for specializing in therapeutic slow songs for junkies to vent out whatever it is that's bugging them. I heard it relieves a lot of stress. But I sure didn't expect him to be here tonight. Say, why don't we go to the open-air stalls? It's just around the corner." So off we went, ordered fried wanton noodles and Heringanese chicken rice and chatted some more while waiting for the food to come. All around, the clamor of peddlers inviting passersby to try their wares, of swift flaming frying techniques and the scraping of woks greeted me. The rich spicy aroma stemming from culinary practices of the diverse Melizian cultures was welcoming, and Henri began to make amusing face gestures just to indicate that his mouth was watering. "Hen, I'm curious to know," I began after thanking the boy who brought our frothy and steaming milk tea. "When did Que start doing all this stuff?" Sitting opposite me, Henri fidgeted uncomfortably before answering. "I guess it'll be about three years or so." I recalled the riveting melody, and his clear resonance, quaking slightly at the powerful emotions lurking behind the song. "What happened to him then? It must have had a great impact on him, judging from the rendering he made." Again, he hesitated, stirring his drink with a teaspoon before answering, "The others would surely kill me if I told you about this now. But what the heck – it’s unfair for you not to know. About three years ago, Que, I don’t know how to say it,” he sounded flustered, but I gestured for him to continue. “He lost his sweetheart.” “Who was it?” I inquired. “Just some girl he had been fancying ever since he was small,” was all Henri supplied. “Did she die?” I asked inquisitively, all of a sudden feeling sorry for Que. “He dumped her? She dumped him? She ran away? Hey, if he lost her, why didn’t he search for her?” “There had been a lovers’ spat,” Henri replied, his eyes still downcast. “She ran away before he could stop her, before he could tell her he was sorry. This he regretted, even up till now. He tried in vain to search for her, and one day a housewarming party invitation in her writing found its way into his hands. He was ecstatic, and quickly went to see her, but was shattered to find that she was already married to someone else. Despite that, he put in a lot of effort to woo her back. It backfired. She moved not long afterward, and Que never heard from her again.” “What a sad soppy tale,” I remarked, feeling unshed tears threatening to fall. Luckily our steaming food came. I took the opportunity to rub my eyes as Henri took the plates of food from the waiter’s hands. “Dust in my eyes,” I whispered when he asked me if I was OK. Once we had finished our meal, two little girls came to our table, shyly indicating that they wanted to sell the flowers they had in their woven baskets. Henri quickly turned around to look at me, inquiring which flower I wanted. “The tiger lilies and roses look nice,” I replied. Henri aptly chose three lilies and five pink rosebuds, then paid the girls. The girls giggled, went over to my side and smilingly passed the selected flowers to me. They stared at me for a while, a wondering look in their eyes, before they turned around and, still holding hands, ran away. “Hope you like ‘em,” smirked Henri, and ordered two more milk teas. “I do,” I whispered, inhaling the scent of the flowers. “Thank you very much.” Our drinks came, and Henri began to stir his drink to enable it to get cold faster. “By the way, I’ve been meaning to tell you, thank you for the flowers before.” “Before what?” Henri queried, eyebrows raised. “You know,” I faltered. “At the hospital and such.” He stared at me for some time before explaining, “That wasn’t me.” “It wasn’t you?” I was confused. “That night, the first night I came home, who put the flower on my dinner tray? It wasn’t you? Then who?” “God knows,” shrugged Henri, seemingly indifferent. He waited for me to finish my drink before pulling me up to my feet. Again, he forced me to walk slowly and painfully some ways, laughingly pointing out that the exercise would be good for me, and besides, I deserved it for passing up the chance to see my beautiful physiotherapist at the hospital. 18) The Training The days that passed were uneventful, except for two occasions both occurring the evening after my shopping spree with Henri. Penny had flown into the dining room with a rolled up newspaper in her hand, cheeks flushing excitedly. She had thrown open the center page and we all pored over it. I remember feeling shocked to see that it was a blown-up picture of Henri smiling at me while I was inhaling the scent of the flowers he had bought. “Ooh,” Penny had cooed slyly. “They’re saying you guys are in lurve. My, my, no wonder you were both out all night! How can you possibly keep a secret like that from me?” “Penny, you idiot,” Henri had laughed, thumping her on the back, looking slightly flustered. “You know it’s not true.” “These tabloids,” Skye remarked darkly. “They exploit people, catch them when they’re vulnerable. And for what? To garner in more sleazy readers to boost their sales.” “Why white flowers, though?” was Qit’s only comment. “I thought they were supposed to be for the dead.” Que didn’t say anything; he merely scowled. I then asked Penny whether I could have the newspaper, and she generously said yes. That was during dinner. Right after dinner, I heard a commotion coming from the direction of the reception area. We had hurriedly gone to see what the matter was, and I ashamedly regretted it when I saw Dark trying to drag his mammoth suitcase into the mansion and Skye preventing him from entering. “Since you’re not coming home,” he had shouted, trying to push her away with one hand, “then I’m coming here to stay.” Penny, Henri, Que, Qit and I then quickly slinked back into the dining room. Everybody had seemed embarrassed as the sound of Dark’s suitcase thumped heavily on every step he took going up the staircase, and the thumping followed all the way to Skye’s room. We had made sure that Skye’s room had been slammed shut and that both of them were nowhere to be found before scurrying up to our own rooms for solace. When the next morning came, we found Dark sitting in Ari’s chair, and that Skye was sitting quietly beside him. Henri promptly filled in Skye’s empty seat next to me and Penny went to sit at the other end of the table. Dark seemed to want to catch my eye, but one look at Skye’s glum face and downcast eyes was enough to make me know better. I focussed instead on finishing my fried spicy yellow noodles. Saturday was the day Henri would depart for Jami Jami Isle. By that time, thanks mostly to him, I had learned to walk without using crutches, though I still tend to use objects around me for leverage. Ari came to the mansion early and joined us for breakfast. He seemed surprised to see Dark, who I had managed to avoid confronting up till now, at the dining table, but was not shocked. That afternoon, Henri took me out to collect our clothes from the tailors. We took my car, and he asked me to sit in the driver’s seat. He patiently reminded me how to operate the vehicle, and I was glad beyond relief when I drove, slowly but surely, and reached the tailor shop in one piece. I then coerced him to try his suit out first, and when he stepped out of the dressing room looking every inch a gentleman, I had applauded enthusiastically and told him so. Next, we made our way to the tailor next-door where he forced me to try out my outfit first. I relented, and when I happily came out feeling that the dress suited me comfortably, Henri had remarked that I looked ravishing in it. “But you’d better wear it only on special occasions,” he had advised. “Wouldn’t want people to think you’re a runaway Maranganese bride or something. And make sure you wear the trousers that go along with it. It’d be much too revealing otherwise.” His flight was at 7.30 p.m. Despite my pleas, he refused to allow me to send him to the Rkuyu Airport, about an hour’s drive away. He would meet his teammates there. At fifteen past five o’clock, he was already downstairs, dressed smartly in crisp immaculate white Royal Guard uniform, with a ceremonious thin-bladed sword hanging from his sash by his side. As he adjusted his cufflinks properly, I brushed off the lint from his shoulders. Finally, Uncle C. the chauffeur went up the drive in a limousine and promptly put Henri’s suitcase into the car’s trunk. Beside us, the others were all saying goodbye and wishing Henri a safe journey. All of a sudden, a lump formed in my throat and I felt like clinging onto Henri and not letting him go to Jami Jami. But I bravely smiled up to him, forcing myself not to cry. It would, after all, only take him a week or so. Nevertheless, I wasn’t comfortable with the idea of him going away: it would, after all, be the first time I wouldn’t be able to see him since my coma. But finally, I gave in to my conflicting emotions and stood on tiptoes to surprise him with an affectionate peck on the cheek. When I waved and waved until the car was just a speck on the horizon, the sky turned gray and glum. Then, there was a sudden downpour. It rained heavily all throughout the night, too, mirroring my gloomy mood exactly. That night, I tossed and turned, but couldn’t sleep. Only when I stared at the tabloid’s center page picture for some time could I finally be comforted enough to doze off. The next morning, I went down to the storeroom because Henri had mentioned some of my things were still boxed up. I had been dismayed and troubled to find the storeroom so huge and filled with hundreds of cartons. I had to ask a support staff for help first before I discovered that most boxes were labeled and arranged in alphabetical order. In no time at all, I found a few boxes bearing my name on the cover. The boy, Stone, who turned out to be Eva’s brother, helped carry the boxes up to my room. There I rummaged through the various knick-knacks, photograph albums and newspaper clippings. I arranged the items out on the floor, trying to see whether I could get a sense of familiarity. But nothing, not even the photographs, reminded me of anything. They were comforting, a heritage of the past, yes, but failed its purpose in jump-starting me to mental recovery. One burned photograph stood out among the others, though. There was only the left half left, and I brought this up for closer inspection. Out of the charred remains, I could only make out Que’s beaming youthful countenance. Judging from the photograph, he seemed not older than twenty. He was dressed in a smart suit, and behind him I made out a gazebo, with what seemed to be a smudged-looking Skye looking down to the ground. Was this a wedding? If yes, whose was it? And since Skye was there, too, could it be possible that I knew the bride and/or groom? In fact, why was Que dressed like the groom’s best man – was he one? I pondered these questions over. Was it Ari’s wedding? Or Skye’s? The second one appeared more possible. After all, what was Skye doing in the gazebo? I made a mental note to find out the dates of Ari’s as well as Skye’s wedding ceremonies. Other than that, I was amazed by the great number of pictures featuring mostly me and a red sports car. I scrutinized the pictures up close, noticed that the pictures must have been taken at different times, because my outfit, the place, the weather, and sometimes even my hairstyle, did not coincide with one another. I further mused the possibility that I had once owned such a beautiful vehicle. I noted the plate number: AB21. Nice number. What was it supposed to represent, my age when I bought it? I didn’t think it was logical for me to borrow someone else’s car for a long period of time when I could have easily purchased it myself in the first place. I knew I had to ask Henri about it at a later date. I also discovered a musical box which still played Swan Garden beautifully, with its key still attached to it. I was shocked to find several jeweled rings, necklaces, earrings and bangles inside. One look and I was sure the value to be at least fifty thousand dollars. But what on earth made me so careless, leaving my jewelry just like that? Then I remembered Henri’s remark that here in the mansion, everyone trusted each other, and I felt grateful relief at the truth behind that statement. After a hearty lunch of rice, sardines, omelet, black pepper steak, squids cooked in soy sauce and salad, we packed our belongings and lined the suitcases we would bring to the camp all along the wall in the reception area. I had just returned from bidding a fond farewell to Midnight when Uncle C. drove a blue Tryco adventure recreational vehicle up the driveway. We then hoisted our stuff and climbed aboard. I saw Skye saying goodbye to Dark. They shook hands, each wearing a stoical expression, then Skye took Dark’s hand and kissed it, and he in return kissed her on each temple. We set out at 3 p.m. and our estimated arrival time was at 7 p.m. Along the way, Penny, sitting in front, played the radio until we entered the thick forest of Bayou. Then, because we couldn’t receive radio transmission, Penny abruptly switched it off with a moan. Luckily, Ari said he had stashed his guitar somewhere and proceeded to entertain us during most of the journey. I wasn’t really aware of what was going on, because during the last half of the journey, I had already nodded off to sleep, sometimes leaning against Skye’s shoulder, sometimes against Que’s, though I always righted myself whenever I was aware it was happening. We arrived later than anticipated, at almost eight o’clock. When we arrived, we found the two forest rangers, Mel and Pet, who would be handling us welcoming us. They then proceeded to show us our quarters, made out of logs. There were two huts available: one for the men and one for the women. There were only two mobile toilets, and I overheard Penny commenting that she would be sure to be the first in line to use them tomorrow morning. After a dinner of spaghetti with canned sauce and meatballs, we tiredly trudged back to our huts for some much-needed rest. I learned later that Uncle C. had already gone home and would only return to pick us up on Friday. When asked, Penny told me that some of the gang had been here once, though it had been a long time ago. Before I drifted off to sleep on my hard bunk bed, the Henri-and-me folded tabloid picture comfortingly grasped in my hand below the pillow under my head, I overheard Penny whining to Skye that the government was sure trying too hard to decrease their budget costs. She hinted that the camp looked as if it had nothing to offer. And that was the last I remembered. I learned from Mel the next day that it was the first camping session they had to offer to anyone, period. When I asked some more, she admitted having a high-ranking uncle in the Ministry of Defense. When she told him she wanted to be a camp counselor and asked him for guidance and assistance, he had promptly recommended her to the ministry, and that was how the Fighters were sent there on such short notice. Even though she claimed it was her first time managing a training camp, I realized that her partnership with Pet wasn’t that bad, either. In fact, I learned a lot of new stuff from them, such as how different colors affect people differently, and learned to view the world from a different perspective, even though Penny protested they were only recycling the same old stuff over and over again. For the first four days, we had nothing but workshops, with the occasional strength and endurance training. Usually, when the others went for jungle trekking, I’d be left alone because of my still weak and slow legs. But I used the time wisely, flexing my leg muscles and doing handgrip exercises as well as testing their power and resilience. Sometimes we went birdwatching, taking our binoculars with us, and sometimes we climbed up to a treehouse in the jungle overlooking a small watering hole and waited until nighttime. That was when the wild boars, tapirs, mousedeers and other wildlife came out to drink. I used to take short naps then until the others roused me awake in the middle of the night when the animals chose to appear. Sometimes, when we were lucky, we saw the stripes of a tiger streaking nearby. At times like this, I was always aware of the others’ comfortingly constant and easygoing camaraderie around me. Then, I would look up through the leafy foliage at the distant stars shining above, breathe in the somewhat humid air with the damp jungle-scented breeze – knowing perfectly well that it would be a long time before I could repeat this again - and count my blessings. 19) Counseling By Friday, the last day there, Penny was objecting to the strenuous exercise regime and was sure her calves would bulge with stone-hard muscles if she didn’t watch out soon. I realized that though I did not participate much in the games and physical training for fear of injury, and that though Penny complained about being tired, she, much like the rest, was strong enough to walk about and bicker about the most mundane things. I held their apparent spirit and stamina in high esteem and told her so, making her break into smiles and stop criticizing everything in sight. Under their breath, the guys whispered their thanks for putting an end to her seemingly endless tirade. Perhaps due to Penny’s outburst, Mel and Pet informed us that there would be group counseling and communication workshops. This caused a lot of consternation amongst us. “Counseling?” Skye had remarked. “Feels like I’m a small kid being sent to the principal’s office all over again.” “Why should we undergo more workshops?” Ari questioned. “I’m sure our communication skills are commendable.” He looked around for support and Que and Qit applauded. “Well,” Mel had said, frowning over the paper she held in one hand. “They did mention specifically that you needed to sharpen your communication skills. They especially stressed the importance of understanding, respect, loyalty, dependability, teamwork, having faith in others and above all, two-way communication amongst you.” Her speech caused deathly silence all around the dingy little room. I knew she had struck a nerve then. After that, the gang gamely agreed and participated well in the various teambuilding activities. After lunch of boiled corn, peas, potatoes, yam, tapioca and some side dishes made out of grated coconut, mayonnaise, butter and cheese, we were ready for the counseling session. Unlike before, Mel was not being very specific. “I want you to propose a topic which we will use to discuss later,” she had smiled at us as we sat in steel chairs arranged in a circular pattern around her. Most of us were stumped, but only for a split second. “Food,” Ari yelled out. “Please, Ari,” Mel said patiently. “Something related to communication is what I was aiming for. Perhaps, emotions? Or maybe our different mindsets? Something along that line. I promise your answers will not be revealed or discussed outside this room, so please feel at ease.” “Girls, then,” Qit proffered with Ari snickering beside him. “How about discussing our idea on the perfect man?” Penny suggested next with a dreamy look in her eyes. Then she quickly added, “Or woman.” “Bingo!” Mel had agreed. I had the suspicion that, like Penny, she was also a romantic at heart despite her tough demeanor. “Why don’t we discuss that?” “But, but,” Skye began hesitantly. “What about us who are already married?” “Oh, pooh,” Penny scoffed. “You can just describe Dark, then. Or if you want, you can always come up with an imaginary Dream Guy. He doesn’t have to exist to be real, right?” At this, Mel nodded her agreement. I saw a pained expression on Skye’s face. “That’s below the belt, Penny.” “Sorry,” shrugged Penny. “But lighten up, Skye! We’re here to have fun, despite the commando training and such. Besides, we’re gonna go home soon! Think about it.” At Penny’s question, Mel asked all of us to draw a chart each of the person’s attributes: his looks, characteristics, mannerisms, occupation and anything else that we could think of. As we went around the circle half and hour later, starting with Ari, most of us burst out guffawing when he expectedly described the wifely Joy, stating that she was the type to bring out the slippers for him, cooking and feeding him tasty food most days, and finally admitting by the end of the day, he was the one who had to give her a back rub because she had overexerted herself. Qit was next. Mel took down Ari’s chart from the board and pinned Qit’s instead. We were all giggling, ready to ridicule the still eligible bachelor about his Dream Girl, but Qit had evidently overseen this and was very vague about his requirements. I quickly resolved that a great population of women all around the world would have fit his description. When it was Que’s turn, I somehow got the impression that the gang was expectant as well as ironically quiet and fidgety. I shrugged this off as a result of my imagination, then listened interestedly as he described one who seemed to be the direct opposite of him in all attributes. I smirked, knowing that this wasn’t a description of Lawles. I further deduced that he was describing his long lost love instead. Penny on the other hand described a person who was none other than her Hunky Dream Guy from the army barracks. I almost rolled with laughter when Ari exposed her Dream Guy’s identity and pointed out she had to ditch her present boyfriend first before snaring Hunky Guy. She merely gave him a stony look in response and sat down, arms folded, sulking. Skye seemed slightly reluctant to pass her chart to Mel to pin up. After a short coughing fit, she finally proceeded to read out her list. Rather than depicting Dark, she went on to read what I assumed was what she wanted to ask from her husband, if only she had the guts to ask it of him: respect, friendship, trust, laughter, fair-mindedness and loyalty. I thought she looked slightly misty-eyed as the guys cheered her agreeably when she sat down, but I couldn’t be sure. “So, it’s finally your turn, Azure,” Mel had smiled at me. I stiffened as I passed my chart to her, feeling the others’ eager eyes piercing me. “I know you’re still recuperating, so don’t stress yourself too much on this simple exercise.” I inhaled and cleared my throat self-consciously, sensing the others leaning forward and pricking their nosy ears. I knew I had no inkling about my personal preferences before, but somehow the way my hand had furiously penned the list comforted me and gave me courage. So I proceeded to read the list I held in my hand. “First of all,” I began shyly, trusting my instincts. “About his physical attributes, he doesn’t have to be handsome, or dashing, or anything else for that matter. I don’t like flashy guys, though I do hope he has slanting eyes. I’d be happy to get someone with a pleasant countenance that I find appealing on a personal level. I don’t want high maintenance guys, I’d hate to have to keep on constantly fending other rivals off my man. And I prefer him to be lesser in the looks department so people won’t compliment him more than me.” I giggled as the others snickered good-naturedly around me. “Height doesn’t really matter, though he shouldn’t be shorter than me. Weight is debatable: I wouldn’t mind a jovial chubby teddy bear, but not an obese one.” The others smiled, rather nervously I decided, as they asked me to continue. “A good sense of humor is essential. I don’t want him not getting my jokes and one-liners, with me having to prompt him by laughing first. He should be wiser than me, matured, perhaps a few years older than me, hardworking, patient and tolerant, treat me nice, able to give me proper guidance, maybe work in the service sector and he doesn’t have to be a genius as long as he doesn’t mind me showing off my intellect once in a while. “Other than that, he should be easy to get along with, friendly, doesn’t have to be rich, ‘cuz we already make a lot, right?” I winked at Skye before continuing, “I’d like him to be dependable, trustworthy, like me as I am, not for the wrong reasons, and he can be clumsy and awkward at times but that’s OK. Oh, yes, and he should be able to appreciate anything Maranganese, too. Well, that about sums it up.” I sat down and looked at Mel. “That’s quite a detailed list you have there,” Mel finally noted. “Yeah, well,” I replied offhandedly. “This does after all have an impact on my life, you know.” “I’m sure of that, plus the fact that all of you, at 25 years of age, should be well experienced with the various degrees of interpersonal relationships,” Mel then commented. “And can you think of the reason why we did this little exercise?” “To find out who our guy or girl is?” Penny fluttered her eyelashes hopefully. “Well, not exactly,” Mel disagreed. “You know what they say, the eyes are windows to the world. Sometimes, what you seek in others is actually what you know in your subconscious others seek from you. To like a person, you have to be on par with him, or her, at some level. It doesn’t necessarily have to be in everything. And yes, opposites do attract sometimes. But for that to happen, a common bond that both of you share should already exist. It could be anything, from language, belief or custom, to a similar background or preference. Much like all of you gathered here today. ”Your words can show who you really are, what you feel inside, your fears, what you think others think of you. The motive of this exercise is for you to recognize this and channel your energy and mind more positively. For you to open up to one another and communicate truthfully, honestly – this is very important in a team.” We listened aptly, glancing at one another, accepting the logic behind her theory, even though we didn’t completely agree with all that she said. “Like I said, what you expect from others is what others expect from you,” Mel continued. “Like you, Skye, you said you wanted respect and warmth. I know as a person, you are a warm and loving individual, but I have to admit I don’t know how you’d act in private. Though I assume there wouldn’t be that many differences, I’d still like to advice you to ask yourself whether you have given or will give the same amount of respect and warmth to the said person. Have you done your all? Do you think you deserve the respect and warmth you want from him, when you yourself give nothing in return?” Skye looked down to the cold and slightly cracked cement floor, seemingly lost in thought. “And you, Qit,” she called out and Qit quickly snapped to attention. “Did you realize you’ve left out much of the flesh on your girlfriend’s description? Or was it intentionally done so that the others won’t poke fun at you?” Qit nodded after the second question. “Well, you may not be aware of it but by being pretty obscure about your preferences, you gave me the impression that you don’t actually know yourself that well yet. I don’t know why, or perhaps some event has triggered that doubt in you. You are still unsure of your purpose, your reason for being, and your destination in life. And until you learn more about yourself, you’re not ready for commitments, at least not just yet. Am I right?” Qit stared at the smiling Mel before nodding quietly. “Ari, I’m glad that you seem to have found your ideal better half,” remarked Mel, and Ari beamed at the compliment. “But somehow your speech seems to point toward one thing: you’re tiring her down.” While Qit laughed and slapped Ari’s back, Ari shrugged, “She’s five months along.” “Congratulations, then,” grinned Mel. “But you know, she is at a delicate stage. Perhaps you should pamper her more, ease her burden somewhat. Comfort her and nourish her, don’t let her do so many things just to please you.” Again, Ari shrugged. “She’s darned obstinate sometimes. She keeps insisting she needs to do chores around the house, and won’t let me help her.” “Then I see it as your duty to have a quiet chat with her,” Mel determined. “Try to comfort her, soothe whatever fears that are troubling her. Tell her she doesn’t have to be a Superwoman just to capture your heart, because she already has it.” “You talk like poetry,” Penny commented dreamily. “Mind if I jot down your words to use in my love letters?” Mel ignored her question and drove straight to the point. “Penny, you are an obnoxious little brat who’s probably been pampered too much by her uncle,” she decided, shocking us with her bluntness and unsettling Penny. “You either don’t seem to be aware or care that others sometimes find your words offensive.” “Yeah, that’s what they always say,” Penny complained. “So what’s stopping you from stopping them? Have more faith and respect for others, Penny, and they will do the same to you. Stop playing the fool when you’re serious, and stop being so serious when you’re joking. Being mysterious and making people confused are two very different things: you need to distinguish one from the other.” Penny gave Mel a look that clearly showed Mel had irked her. “I don’t need to be told all this.” “Oh, yes, you do,” Mel had replied earnestly. “All this while, your uncle has been the one overseeing your progress every step of the way. It’s time for you to move on, leave his shadow and become an independent woman. You should know better.” Penny pouted, not liking this at all. “And for starters, I suggest you be more open, more honest to yourself. Ask yourself what you want out of life, and live a more meaningful one. Exteriors seldom matter, so don’t just judge a book by its cover. Walls may crumble, you know.” Que then raised his gaze to meet Mel’s eyes as she shifted to face him. “My poor Que,” was what Mel murmured. “You seem to have had your grasp on something very precious in your life. Then, whether it was just a cruel twist of fate or you simply slipped during a moment of weakness, it has gone, away from your reach. The part where you still delve in the past is tragic, Que. Try to move on. But the part where you still hold on to those fond memories point toward you believing that you are near to making your ardent wish come true. Am I right so far?” Que seemed stumped, but then, recovering, he quickly answered by nodding. “You also seem to be fixed in the belief that your Dream Date is the total opposite of you,” Mel continued her narration. “But your obvious effort in portraying her to be so seems to point to the opposite.” She stared at the gaping Que meaningfully, adding slyly, “Isn’t that so, Que?’ Stupefied, Que could only nod his head wordlessly. “She does seem to possess some traits that are also apparent in you,” Mel went on. “There seems to be some sort of common ground where you can both meet each other half-way. I’m sorry you had to struggle very hard to get to where you are today, striving and staking your life for that one belief you truly, and almost desperately, cling onto. I know a luckier person bearing your good traits and attributes wouldn’t normally have to face the tribulations you suffered. It doesn’t seem right somehow, but then life is never fair. You have to keep on searching for the silver lining in your cloud, Que. I know you’ll find it one day if you believe in yourself and your abilities.” Que seemed so grateful and appreciative to this advice that he actually choked with emotion. All of us seemed embarrassed by this and avoided looking at him. “And now it’s your turn, Azure dearie,” said Mel as she swiveled around to finally face me. “Again, I am sorry if you aren’t sure whether these are the same attributes you would have chosen had you not lost your memory. I don’t know for sure myself, but I guess it would have turned out similar after all. “The fact that you have a detailed list signifies that you have been giving this idea a lot of thought, way before your half-hour brainstorming session. And the fact that you have a somewhat clear vision of your Ideal Man seems to point that you have come across or been acquainted to someone matching the descriptions, but whether you know of him in the past or present I have no way to tell. “Forgive me for saying this, but you also seem to have low self esteem. Why then did you purposely seek somebody who isn’t exactly the perfect specimen of the Dream Guy, as set by our modern society? I have the feeling that you want such a man you might feel safe and comfortable with, both in public and in private, and perhaps one who is apt to pamper you as well as be dominated to a certain extent. You also seem to believe that your Dream Guy’s characteristics matches yours at some level.” “Whew,” I finally murmured, shaking slightly. “You really blew my mind. Feels as if you peeped into my soul just now. You sure you’re not psychic?” “I’m not,” Mel answered with a laugh. “It’s almost like she could see us naked,” Penny whispered to me. “She was an analyst before,” Skye supplied. “Before she gave up her practice.” “No kidding,” I whispered back. There was a buzz around the room as we all discussed our answers and the hidden motives behind them. Pet chose that moment to knock on the door and asked Mel to be excused for a while. Mel stepped out with him, only to return a minute later bearing wonderful news for us. “Everyone,” she called out to us as she strode into the room. We all looked up at her and paid attention. “Listen up. I have great news for you. Your Uncle Cardon called up asking whether he could meet you guys in town instead, about half an hour away. Pet has already told him yes. So pack your things, gang. Pet and I’ll drive you there after tea.” We followed her excitedly to the makeshift dining hall and tucked in to a meal of dry biscuits, fruits and Camerodian tea, all the while talking excitedly, eager at the prospect of finally going home. After finishing, all of us raced for our rooms, anxious to pack. I merely dumped all my clothes into my bag, pushing them down to make more room at the top. Penny was whooping around the room about how she hoped she could go shopping in town. Pretty soon we were in Mel’s green old jeep. Pet was driving with Skye sitting beside him. The others, including me and Mel, all sat outside at the back. I preferred it this way, having the welcomed wind blowing at my face, flushing my cheeks slightly, or so Que pointed out to me. Sometimes Pet would honk away startled deers off the trail, and sometimes he would holler back at us to duck because of approaching overhanging branches. 20) Returning Home Once we arrived in the sleepy town after actually forty-five minutes of travel, Pet stopped in front of the only supermarket around. We all jumped down from the back as Skye and Pet stepped down. “Look,” said Pet, lighting a cigarette. I wondered where he’d bought it. “Mel and I are gonna do some grocery shopping. Why don’t you kids take a look around while waiting for Cardon? I’m sure he’ll be arriving soon. Just don’t forget to meet us one last time before you go, OK?” “I think you’d be pleased to know that your mobile phones should be working now,” added Mel with a smile. “We are after all out of the jungle.” We checked our phones, and were pleased to see that they now indicated signal bars on the display panel. We chucked our belongings onto the front seats before Pet locked the doors, then waved at him and Mel as we walked down the street, noticing that there were only a few rows of shops evident. “Look, why don’t we girls go one way and you guys go another?” Penny suggested, looking up at Ari. “We don’t want to bore you any more than we want you to bore us.” “Sure,” Qit commented amicably, shoving at Ari and Que to get a move on. “We’ll see you guys later, alright?” So Penny, Skye and I trudged down the street, buying some candies at the local candy store, browsing through the interesting items they sold at the small antique shop and Skye showing off her violin skills at an old dusty shop selling a few musical instruments. I was astounded, not realizing that she was a genius with the violin. Finally, Penny stopped in her tracks in the middle of the pavement to gasp at something. “A bridal boutique,” she marveled, pointing it out to us. “At this god forsaken place? I got to check this out.” So we stepped in, curious to see what kinds of designs they could possibly have. Penny noted that unlike the more modern and sexier designs in Kismet Kesuma, the gowns on display seemed more traditional. Nevertheless, I had to admit that the old-fashioned clothes had a refreshingly nostalgic and romantic touch to them. “We’re just browsing,” Penny told the friendly boutique owner. “Do you think we could perhaps try out some of your beautiful quaint creations?” “Sure,” the kindly woman laughed, then called out to a couple she had been attending to. “Char, I think they can solve your problem. You see, girls, Char is getting married to Herek here, early next month. But she is rather shy about trying out the outfits.” I looked down at her somewhat prominent abdomen, and realized why she was reluctant to try her wedding gown. “Great,” Penny was telling Char earnestly. “Why don’t we parade up and down for you? I’m sure it’ll be easier for you to choose then. Let me try first.” So Char pointed out the three outfits she had selected and Penny took one to the dressing room. I stepped out for a while, using my phone to call Henri. I couldn’t wait to go home and see him soon. But I kept being diverted to his voice message box instead. After several attempts, I left a message for him, telling him we’d be going back soon. Pretty soon, the boutique door creaked open and Penny popped her head out. I smiled at the elaborate hand-stitched motifs bordering her taffeta satin gown. “You’re next,” Penny told me. I quickly followed her in, just as Skye stepped out of the dressing room, looking resplendent in a hazy white lace outfit. Char quickly came forward and passed to me the third wedding gown to try. After I had put on the simple embroidered cotton dress with a wide embroidered sash around the waist and a circlet of flowers atop my head, I pushed aside the drapes and approached the eagerly waiting Penny and Char. I twirled around while Char remarked excitedly that she was going to choose my simple outfit after all. Then, as Char and her fiancé went to discuss with the boutique owner, Penny pulled my hand and dragged me to the display window. “Hey, what’s this?” I exclaimed, a little perplexed. “Just a little test,” Penny had sniggered as Skye looked on at us wonderingly. Penny then pushed the display mannequins aside and shoved me quite forcibly till I almost hit the window. I sputtered, my palms pressed flat against the windowpane, then realized I was looking up at Que’s startled eyes from where he stood on the pavement just outside the window. “You’re dead meat,” I swung around, my face flushed and my eyes glaring, punching Penny again and again on the shoulder. But I guess it didn’t hurt her much, because she kept on laughing through it all, guffawing so hard her face turned red. “That was priceless,” she wheezed as the boutique door opened slowly and the guys trooped in tentatively. “I wish I had a camera.” “That was cruel, Penny,” Skye told her. “But when did you call Que? I didn’t see you using your phone.” “Just now,” she gasped and laughed so hard tears came to her eyes. “When I was changing.” I was about to throttle her when I chanced to see a fourth face peer in through the door after Ari. “Hen?” I couldn’t believe my eyes. “Hello, Bright Eyes,” Henri greeted me, hands in his pockets as he sauntered over with that ever-constant saucy smile playing on his lips, taking in my simple bridal gown. “How come you never sent me your wedding invitation, huh?” “Hen!” I cried delightedly as I ran toward him, jumped and flung my arms around his neck. “Happy to see me?” he laughed as he tried to disengage himself from my clinging hands. “The assignment ended early, so I asked Uncle C. to pick me up at the airport. In fact, we had only just arrived.” “Why didn’t you tell us earlier?” I swiped a playful punch at his chest. “I couldn’t call you on your cell phone,” he explained. “Besides, I wanted to surprise you. I’ve brought something for you from Jami Jami. It’s in my bag. We’ll go get it later, I promise.” I looked around and was surprised to catch Que staring at me intensely. For some reason, this made me uncomfortable, and I quickly excused myself to change back into my multicolored jeans and black T-shirt. When Penny, Skye and I had all changed and returned the wedding gowns, the proprietor and Char thanked us profusely, much to our embarrassment. Then, I linked arms with Henri and Skye and all seven of us walked all the way back to the supermarket. There, we found the ARV parked besides Pet’s 4WD, and Uncle C. himself leaning against the car, chatting with Pet and Mel. We thanked Mel and Pet for putting up with us all this while, and went into the shop to purchase some drinks and snacks to enjoy on the way back. Then we waved back gaily out through the windows at Mel and Pet as Uncle C. drove off. On the way, I told Henri everything we had gone through for the past one week and made a passing remark that the girl in the shop, Char, had been pregnant. “Yes,” Henri had commented. “I noticed that. So?” I looked at him, wondering how to rephrase my answer and wondering also why I had brought the subject up in the first place. “It’s just that she’s getting married only after she’s pregnant.” Henri had shrugged. “What about it? A lot of people do that nowadays. Heck, I don’t necessarily agree to it but that’s just the way of the world today, I guess.” I stared at him wonderingly. “Forgive me for being old-fashioned, but I believe getting pregnant before marriage is a major no-no,” I declared firmly. Around me, everyone was quiet and I knew they were paying close attention to my self-righteous statement. Henri stared back at me, a strange look in his eyes. “You of all people shouldn’t be so judgmental on others,” he finally commented. Then, when I opened my mouth to speak, he quickly cut me off. "OK, OK now -–stop it. I refuse to continue this conversation with you.” I bit my lip uncertainly and kept silent. We both kept that way for some time. After a while, Henri took a cute fuzzy little teddy bear wearing the Jami Jami traditional dress made out of grass out of his bag and passed it to me. “Here, this one’s for you.” “So where’s mine, Henri?” asked Penny from the front seat. “You’d better not forget.” “I only bought chocolates for you guys,” Henri laughed and took them out to pass around. I popped one piece of jelly covered with chocolate into my mouth and chewed absent-mindedly, staring at the teddy bear in my hand. For some reason, the sight of it distressed me. But I quickly pasted a smile on my face and thanked the beaming Henri sweetly. Henri then tapped Skye on the shoulder and she turned back to look imploringly at him. “You are aware that we’re gonna hold the charity concert soon, right?” he asked her. “And that the charity ball’s gonna be following soon after?” “Yes,” thanked Skye. Then she turned to address me. “I almost forgot to remind you, Azure. There’s gonna be a poll soon to nominate people who are going to be involved in both events. I think they’ll read the results tomorrow.” “Am I involved, too?” I asked, wide-eyed. “Sure,” replied Skye, smirking. “Your name’s on the list.” “I wonder what they have in store for us this year?” Penny thought out loud. “Is this charity thingy an annual event?” I turned and asked Que. He seemed to ponder before answering. “You know what,” he smiled at me kindly. “Now that you mention it, the government does hold them every year. But it wasn’t designed to be so. We’ve noticed that the two events are usually coincidental with the Melizian dollar dropping dangerously low.” “But how can that actually help the economy?” I asked, perplexed. “You won’t believe the throng of people who would come all the way from around the world to watch the Fighters in action,” he explained patiently. “Tourism will get a great boost out of this, hotel occupation will be on an all-time high, what with the tourists flocking here, staying here, eating here, basically spending their hard-earned money here.” “Really?” I remarked, finally understanding. “I didn’t know it would have that kind of effect.” “It does, actually,” Que smiled, his eyes crinkling enchantingly at the corners. “You’d be able to experience it yourself very soon.” “So what do we do anyway?” I was eager to find out. “That’s where whatever you’ve learned come into practice,” Henri cut in, and I turned around to gaze at him. “Any talent that you’re confident with is OK. The usual is singing, dancing or pantomimes.” “Yeah,” added Penny’s voice from in front. “And Skye here is usually the prima donna.” “That’s because she happens to be way more talented than you’ll ever hope to be,” Henri laughed and Penny climbed onto her seat to lean forward and swipe at him angrily with a roll of newspaper. After that, we all focussed on finishing our drinks and snacks. I fell into a deep sleep after adjusting my posture more comfortably and leaning against Henri’s shoulder. When we got home, I was glad to see that the stair-lift and wall-railings had been taken out. This had been done so perfectly that one would never have known they had been there in the first place unless being told about it. As for the teddy bear, I put it on my dressing table. For some reason, I never touched it again until years later, when I finally threw the by then gray-with-dust bear out with the rubbish. 21) The Curious Visitor After breakfast at the mansion the next day, Skye kissed me goodbye before rushing off with Dark at her heels. I was happy to see that Dark, who I made out to be an army intelligence officer, was leaving for work with Skye, as it should be. The others also made their excuse some moments later and Henri actually tweaked my cheek but laughingly got out of the way when I lunged at him angrily. Since the place seemed empty without the others, I walked around the grounds, saying hello to the shy young gardeners mowing the grass and trimming the hedges outside. Finally, I felt a sudden urge to go for a swim, so I rushed upstairs, changed into the least revealing swimming suit I could find, put on a calf-long terry robe and raced downstairs. I told Ms. Sandy that I’d be at the pool should anyone come looking for me. I then reached the pool and locked the door behind me for fear that somebody would creep in and see me. I hung the terry robe on a hook, took a quick shower and then went to the shallow end of the pool. I entered slowly, trying to get used to the cold sensation, until I found myself submerged from the torso down. By this time, I became a little anxious, because I wasn’t all too sure about my swimming ability. Could I swim before? I just couldn’t recall. I decided to test my ability gently, and that I shouldn’t expect too much. I knew I had to be careful as the door was locked and no one was about to come and rescue me should I drown. I took a deep breath, trying to calm myself, and started with a slow dog paddle. I quickly panicked when I realized my buoyancy wasn’t much to begin with, and that I was sinking fast. I sputtered as water entered my mouth and nostrils and when my desperately kicking legs met the tiles at the bottom of the pool, I quickly forced myself to stand up. I was very much relieved to find that the water then only came up to my chin and slowly waded my way out. I decided to check the locker room instead. Inside, I found some interesting things including a stack of clean soft towels, some wire hangers, a beach ball, a polystyrene float, a rubber tire, an inflatable dinghy with the paddles still attached, and at the very end, almost unnoticed, old but still unused, was a pack of cigarettes and a packet of condoms. I stared at the last two items, trying to guess who put them there, and shook my head when I drew a blank. I also wondered where exactly the person bought his cigarettes, because it was actually illegal for people to sell cigarettes and liquor, among other things, in Melize, though strangely enough there were no actual laws against people smoking or drinking. I took them in my hands, questioned why they were there where anybody could gain access to it, and then quickly flung them back in disgust when I realized I was actually touching them. I rubbed my palms against my suit and reminded myself that there were married couples staying here also, and what they did with the condoms in the pool should not be of any concern to me. I used the float, tire and dinghy one after the other, glad that they helped me with my buoyancy problem. After a while my arms and legs ached and my heart felt strained under the exertion. So I decided to take things easy, realizing how it would have been more fun if the others had been there to join me. Just then, the doorknob jingled. I looked up in dismay and quickly made my way out of the pool. Somebody banged on the door, but I ignored it, returning the dinghy to the lockers, putting on my robe in record time and flinging a towel across my shoulders. As I hurriedly made my way to the door, I saw the door shake forcibly. “Azure!” I heard Henri’s muffled shout. “Are you OK in there? Open up before we tear the door down!” In a flash I was at the door and opening it swiftly. Henri and Que tumbled in, lying on a heap on the floor. I frowned down at them, still dripping wet, as they sheepishly got to their feet and brushed off dirt from their clothes. “It’s dangerous to lock the door when you’re in here alone,” Que admonished. I sighed and said, “Yes, I know.” Then I stared at the two, a little confused. “I thought you guys weren’t be coming back till one. What are you doing here now?” Henri frowned back at me. “It is one o’clock already. Why on earth do you think we panicked when Sandy told us you had been cooped up here for ages?” “Really?” I muttered. “I didn’t realize time moved so quickly.” I rubbed my still dripping hair then wrapped the towel all around it. This done, I walked out barefoot into the corridor, the two quickly falling in step with me. “The decision has been made,” Henri told me as we climbed up the stairs. “You won’t have to participate actively in the concert, just props and such.” “Yes,” added Que. “But you, same as Penny, have been chosen to participate in the charity gala.” “Really?” I asked interestedly. “Doing what?” Que hesitated and glanced worriedly at Henri before answering, “For this year, the committee has decided to hold a human auction.” I stared at him disbelievingly. “Say what?” “Oh, you know,” Henri interjected. “Much like a normal auction. But instead of auctioning objects, this time we’re gonna auction people.” “As slaves?” I cried. “What is this, the middle ages? Stonehenge?” “No, no,” said Que quickly, trying to calm me down. “It’s not like that at all. People are going to bid for the participants, and the highest bidder will get to go on a date with the person he bid for.” “You’re kidding,” I decided, staring at Que. “I’m not,” assured Que exasperatedly. I turned to Henri and made my plea. “Please, Henri, bid for me then.” A look of alarm flit across Henri’s face. “I can’t do that, I’m sorry. I have other plans, you see.” “What if my bidder is a monster?” I wailed. “What if he’s a rapist or a serial killer? What’ll happen to me then?” Henri glanced at Que, and on their faces were a mixture of amusement and pity. “It’s OK, Azure,” said Que patiently. “We’ll make sure that won’t happen to you. I’ll stake my life on that promise.” “Besides,” Henri added, “the list of bidders, though confidential, will be screened. And in fact, we foresee that this year’s bidders will mostly consist of well-known dignitaries who we’re already familiar with anyway.” “But I really don’t like this idea,” I said sullenly as I sat on the top of the stairs. The others sat down beside me. “Not one bit. Who came up with this stupid idea anyway? It’s sexist and disgusting.” “The committee suggested this,” explained Que. “But it was the Country Leader who approved it.” “Oh,” I was stumped. “Don’t worry, Azure,” Henri smiled brightly as he gave me a slap on the knee. “Penny’ll keep you company, although I have a feeling she doesn’t mind this one bit. Besides, if you must know, guys will be auctioned off, too, so it’s no sexist thing. Even some married officers have been chosen, too. Think of it as being fun, and you’ll get the main idea.” “Well, what choice do I have anyway?” I summarized dejectedly as I stood up and went to my room, closing the door behind me. On Monday, Qit complained during breakfast that he was rather short-staffed. He was doing research on some technology transfer thing from Marang. He was supposed to have his work completed within a week, and what with concert rehearsals going on, he needed all the help he could get. “Why are you asking me?” Skye had asked while stirring her rice porridge. “It’s not that we don’t want to help you, it’s just that we’re all rather tied up at this moment. Tell me, are you having problems with Maranganese?” Qit had nodded, admitting that he was rather weak in that language. Skye nodded at me. “She’s your answer then,” she calmly said to Qit. I whirled around, surprised. “What are you saying? Am I supposed to help Qit with his work?” “You’ve got a problem with that?” Skye challenged me. “You’re supposed to start work middle of the week anyway. I don’t see any problem in you starting work one or two days earlier. After all, Qit does need all the help he can get.” “But I’m not sure whether I can remember my Maranganese,” I wailed out. “Nonsense,” Skye decided. “If you can remember how to speak Melizian, which wasn’t your mother tongue to begin with, I’m sure you’d have no problem with Maranganese.” I stared at her, chewing my lower lip, realizing I was defeated and had no choice but to comply. I stole a glance at Qit, noticed his unhappy look and realized he wasn’t very comfortable with the arrangement, too. So all throughout the week, Qit and I spent most of our waking hours in the national library, thankfully opened 24 hours a day, in Kismet Kesuma. He was studiously intense when working, seldom wasting words unnecessarily, which at the best of times were pretty concise and precise. At first, this bothered me, and I couldn’t help feeling he disliked me for some reason and wasn’t very comfortable being in close proximity with me. But as the days progressed, I was too caught up with work to care much. I helped him mostly with translations, mainly with the help of translation dictionaries, as well as editing and typing his report, but toward the end of the week, he sought my assistance in researching for past technological news. As a consequence, I spent Thursday and Friday penned up in the library archives room, searching for relevant news in the library’s computer files. By Friday afternoon, I was pretty pleased with the outcome. Then, to try and relieve stress as well as occupy my time, I tried searching for the word ‘Fighter’. Most results concerned news on the gang’s visits, functions and meetings covered by the Melizian media. Dissatisfied with the boring results, I went back through the years, and finally found out that both Skye and Ari had married slightly more than three years ago. Skye’s wedding had been held prior to Ari’s though. Insatiable for more news, I tried skipping back even further until the headline Fighters’ Scandal: Government Keeping Mum screamed out at me. Curious, I noted with interest that I would have been around seventeen when the article was published. I began reading intently, eager to discover what the controversy was all about. I only knew that two Fighters were involved and that the government had refused to comment much. While I was trying to determine the exact nature of the scandal, Qit chose that exact moment to check in on me. “What are you up to?” he asked as he peered through the opened door. I jumped, then grinned at him sheepishly. “I’m all set,” I explained. “My half is done. Just doing some checking, that’s all.” “Good, then,” Qit began, then frowned when he saw what I was reading and strode purposefully toward me. “Hey!” I cried at him in surprise as he abruptly switched off the main switch without even shutting down the terminal first. “Must I remind you,” he said quietly, avoiding my flashing eyes, “that we’re here to complete our work? Let’s go and print the report out and not waste time, shall we?” “Well, OK since you asked so nicely,” I replied sarcastically, sour-faced. He didn’t have to be so curt and strict; it wasn’t as if I had shirked from doing my part anyway. Sullenly I stood up and followed him out the door. Then, on Saturday morning, as I whistled and washed my car with Henri outside the garage after having finally completed and submitted the accursed technology transfer report, a curious young man suddenly appeared and greeted me warmly. “Do I know you?” I asked him as I narrowly avoided his hug. “It’s Pereli,” said Henri, ditching his sponge into the water-filled bucket, his hands foaming with soapsuds. I decided from his tone that he wasn’t very happy to see our visitor. “What is it do you want this time?” He sulked. “I came because I lost the car, and now I don’t have any money –“ he began before Henri cut him off. “You lost the car?” Henri screamed, looking highly upset. He marched up to Pereli and grabbed the front of the latter’s shirt, eyes flashing, looking ready to throttle him to death. I tried to intervene, heard the sound of feet scampering and heaved a sigh of relief as I turned and saw Que hurrying toward us. “The security post at the gate alerted me,” he said by way of explanation to an angry Henri after he had shoved the latter and Pereli apart. Then, arms akimbo, he turned to confront the red-faced coughing Pereli who was lying and groaning on the ground. “What do you want anyway?” “He claims he’s lost the car,” explained Henri after Pereli refused to answer. “And that he needs more money.” “What car? What money?” I asked in bewilderment. “Your beautiful Pereli,” Pereli replied chokingly as he slowly got onto his feet. “The one Que gave to me. I’m so sorry, it happened so fast. I parked in an alley, then these sleazeballs jumped on me and took it away. I’ve even lost all my money during the scuffle, and I need some since I’m penniless now.” “You crazy old loon,” Henri shouted at him in a threatening manner. I saw Pereli flinch. “I’ve got a good mind to call the mental institution to come and pick you up right now. Can’t you do anything else but disturb other people during your spare time?” Que went between the both of them, putting out a restraining arm to stop Henri from advancing any closer to the frightened-looking Pereli. “It’s all right, I’ll handle this,” he told Henri before frowning back at the cowering Pereli and taking his wallet out of his back pocket. He threw a handful of bills at Pereli’s feet and Pereli greedily grabbed them up. “Take that. Now, scram! I don’t want to see your face anywhere near here, you hear?” Pereli nodded excitedly, his eyes wide. He stuffed the money into the pockets of his torn leather jacket and walked away down the driveway, skipping gleefully and singing at the top of his lungs. Despite the strong repulsive smell emanating from him, I felt pity for the disheveled young fellow and attempted to call out to him with the intention of giving him a lift, but Que stopped me. “Don’t,” he told me, shaking his head. “Forget him. He’s not worth worrying about.” With that, he turned around and stamped back toward the mansion. “What was that about?” I asked Henri, confused. “Follow whatever Que said,” advised Henri, taking the water hose and spraying the soapsuds off the car. “Don’t bother your pretty little head thinking about it. He’s just a lunatic, anyway. He comes and goes, and is always harassing us for more and more money.” “But why did Que willingly give it to him?” I queried, curious to know. “And why does he keep telling me he’s lost his car?” “Why concern us in the first place?” Henri shrugged as he went around the car. “Well, he’s just this crazy old guy who always seem down on his luck. We feel sorry for him, but he seems to mistreat our good intentions by being too dependent on us.” “But what about the car?” I reminded him. He looked at me in exasperation and changed the subject. “Hey, whose car is this we’re washing anyway? You want to finish waxing it today? Well, if you want to do it tomorrow, you can do it yourself.” “You don’t have to be so sensitive,” I complained. “I was only asking an innocent question.” “Well, stop it,” Henri snapped moodily, ending the conversation. “It’s irritating. Who knows what a kooky guy thinks anyway?” 22) The Concert I found out later that the concert, which would be held at the national open-air stadium in Kismet Kesuma, would start on Wednesday night. Flyers and posters had already been put up, and now that the identities of who would participate in the event had been confirmed, new posters bearing the names were to be put up beside the previous ones. I helped Henri, Ari, Que and Qit by driving around town and pasting them up in the middle of the night. I heard in the evening news that even though the confirmation of participants for the concert had only been released, news traveled fast. People from everywhere around the world had been thronging into Kismet Kesuma as early as Monday. The promised mob grew in steady numbers and caused shopping malls to be overcrowded and traffic congestion to be at an all-time high. Even us Fighters tried not to go out much, which isn’t very difficult considering that we were pretty tied up with our work anyway. I also discovered that the auction had been moved on to Thursday evening and that the charity ball would be held the following night. “Why don’t they do everything during the weekend?” I had complained to Henri. “Don’t they know these tourists are pesky and problematic? Causing so much havoc. Besides, how are we going to wake up wide-eyed and bushy-tailed the next morning when we’ve been up all night?” “This weekend is coincidentally the Badminton World Championship Tournament in Gebu,” Henri had explained. “Besides, the Country Leader will be visiting Rezajan this Saturday. Who’s gonna officiate the ceremony if we have it this weekend?” “Ah, the Deputy can always replace him,” I had pouted. “It’s not like he hasn’t done this before.” “Then the dignitaries coming here would be insulted,” Henri had replied, trying to brush my question off. “After all, they had been told they would meet the Country Leader. And all this while, he had made it his duty to do the same thing year in, year out. Why should this year be any different?”” Other than that, I was glad to help out prepare for the concert. Sometimes I’d creep into the music room, watching and listening in awe as Skye played music on one instrument after the other. But there would also be a traditional dance performance as well as a pantomime to be performed by government officers. Here, I helped the seamstresses prepare the outfits and accessories, ready for the show. Tuesday night was the full dress rehearsal, and by then, I heard all seats had been fully booked. I was too busy helping with the props backstage that I didn’t have time to watch the Fighters in action. I did hear strains of music, but was too wrapped up in my work to pay much attention to it. On Wednesday itself, I, together with everybody else, arrived at the stadium by nine a.m. As the weather forecast had promised everyone a sunny day, the dome above the stadium had been opened to allow us to view the sky above. We had salad for lunch and dinner, and most of the gang only drank plain water in a bid to take better care of their voices. We ate backstage, sitting on the clothes-strewn floor. At seven o’clock, the stadium gates were opened. I helped fit the dancers into their glittery outfits as fast as I could. By fifteen to eight, I saw that most of the seats were already filled. I could sense their restlessness as the clock ticked away, eager for the program to start. Finally, at eight o’clock sharp, the curtains were opened. All participants trooped up onto the stage, singing the national anthem. All seated stood up. I watched the participants on stage and the audience alternately from the left wing, thankful when the anthem ended and the choir walked single-file toward the backstage, then I sunk to the ground, exhausted. Pretty soon, Dark, acting as the night’s compere and looking smart in a sharp dark suit, came up onstage, greeted everyone and briefed them on the concert’s program. After that, he went offstage, only to appear again and again in between different programs to introduce the performers to the audience. The dance troupe then appeared, giving about fifteen minutes’ performance, with short traditional skits held in between the different dance routines. The Country Leader gave his inspiring fifteen-minute speech after that, and the audience gave him a rousing applause. Penny came out with her magic tricks, looking classy in a timeless top hat and suit. Her magic tricks weren’t the average pull-a-bunny-out-of-a-top-hat routine, and even included her breathing fire out of her mouth. Henri crept up beside me then, whispering that it was a trick I had taught her a long time ago. When her act ended, she gave a curtsey as the audience clapped thunderously. Henri was next. He passed by me and entered the stage, some of the crowds giving him a welcoming clap. It was his first time on stage at the concert, and even though he didn’t seem the least bit daunted by the great number of people staring up at him expectedly, I had no idea how his performance would turn out. Henri did a series of mime, and most of his antics were hilarious enough to make some people roll about on their seats. Pretty soon his act was over, and I was glad to know the audience liked him enough to give him a good round of applause. When he walked up to me in the shadows of the drapes, I saw that he was huffing, his face flushed with beads of perspiration. He anxiously asked how he did, and I told him the truth: that he was a natural. That seemed to cheer him up somewhat. After that, while the lights were dimmed and an expectant hush, absent before, fell upon the spectators, I saw a few stage hands dressed in black pushing a grand piano on wheels onto the middle of the stage. Then, when the spotlights were switched on again, I saw that the national philharmonic orchestra was assembled not too far from the back, sitting on foldable chairs arranged in a crescent. Applause, including screams and whistles, suddenly reverberated throughout the stadium. I raised my eyes and noticed Skye waltzing in from the other wing, dressed in an elegant silver evening gown. She went up to the piano and sat down, adjusting the shawl around her shoulders. As she flexed her fingers, I was amazed at how wild the crowd was going even before she had started doing anything. “She’s the star tonight,” Henri had whispered his explanation. “She’s the main reason people come from across the globe to see her live performance first-hand. She’s the reason we’re playing to a full house tonight.” I nodded my understanding. Even a fool couldn’t miss how euphoric the crowd felt and how much they loved her - it was so evident. Some were even scrambling to climb onto the stage, though security blocked them off. Others with chivalrous hearts threw bouquets of flowers onto the stage instead. When she started playing, accompanied by the orchestra in the background, I knew exactly why she was such a hit with the audience. The piano notes danced gracefully under her dextrous nimble fingers, coaxed to grow from a soft low-keyed tinkling and build into a crescendo. When she started singing breathily into the microphone perched atop the piano, her fervent voice seemed to blend perfectly with the musical accompaniments. I, same as the audience, could do nothing but stare at her, transfixed, as the music she played spellbound all around her. I hardly even realized what the song was all about, much less whether the song was familiar to me (though I found out later that the ballad was one of Skye’s and my favorites). All in all, it was a romantic love song, about the simple power of love, able to break the iciest of hearts and the hardest of stones. The piano tinkled melodiously under her forceful manipulative fingers, sometimes soft and sweet, sometimes strong and furious. I was so wrapped up in the music when the song progressed toward its climax, Skye’s powerful vocal chords matching the melody harmoniously. Then her voice, as well as the sounds of the piano, tapered off at the end. When she stood up to curtsey, the applause she got was thunderous. Even my palms turned painfully red from the furious clapping I gave her. She smiled enchantingly and walked to the edge of the stage, making the crowd wild once more as she stooped down to shake hands with people as well as scoop some bouquets into her arms. The next act was a duet by the Harqis twins. Henri winked at me as the brothers left the shadows of the opposite wing and entered the limelight. Behind them, I saw somebody had moved a drum set onto the stage, and that the drummer himself, none other than Ari, was on standby at his seat. An electronic keyboard had also found its way onto the stage, and behind it was Penny, smiling and waving gaily to everyone. “If I didn’t know better, I’d say they planned all this so that they won’t have to perform solo,” I whispered to Henri, making him laugh. Just then, with his lead guitar strap hanging from his neck, Que grabbed a microphone and walked up to the edge of the stage, much to the spectators’ delight. I saw some of them, mostly girls, jumping up and down and trying to grab a hold of him through the tight security barricade. “Our first number will be something you all are already familiar with,” he began, and I heard somebody shriek out his name. I nudged Henri, pointing toward the first row where Lawles was screaming her head off excitedly. “My, my,” intoned Henri sarcastically. “The ambulance had better be here and whisk her away soon.” “I used to sing this with someone very dear to me,” Que continued. “But for tonight, I’d like to break the tradition and let my brother Qit sing with me, and my good friends Ari and Penny here are to accompany us on the drums and keyboard.” The crowd cheered as Qit, Ari and Penny bowed in the spotlight when their names were mentioned and roared its approval as Que’s deft fingers began plucking the guitar strings. Faster and faster his fingers went till they were just a blur to me, and first Qit with his bass guitar, then Ari and Penny, joined him. Que sang first, his mellow tenor timbre already familiar to my ears. Qit started singing on the second stanza, his baritone voice much deeper than his brother’s. On and on they played their number, singing simultaneously when the chorus came. It was a funny upbeat song about a pair of lovers promising to stay together through thick and thin despite the sky falling down. I saw some teenagers swept up by the music actually dancing in the aisles. When it ended, Que launched into a slow solo number, with Penny’s piano-like tinkling keyboard playing first. Unlike the first happy song, his voice quivered with self-contained emotions surging throughout the sentimental song as he gave his all. He seemed to sing from the bottom of his heart, full of sincerity and regrets, and I couldn’t help feeling as if my heart was being tugged. I appreciated his stark display of vulnerability very much, but found the song ending a little too soon. I sighed as Qit took over the microphone, but his fast little number soon had me, like the whole stadium, clapping and stomping along to the beat. Once that was over, Que handed his guitar to Qit, who had already put down the bass guitar at his feet. Then Que began strumming a banjo a stagehand had passed to him. As before, he strummed faster and faster and the others all joined him with their musical instruments. Ari’s bass voice, even deeper and lower than Qit’s, reverberated throughout the stadium, sending chills up and down my spine. It was a love song, and the way he sang it in his throaty Thanish mother tongue lent a romantic air to it. While singing the chorus, he took out a single red rose stalk from under his jacket and went to the edge of the stage, dropping down onto his knees amid screaming fans. When the spotlight fell on him, I saw that he was proffering the flower to a proud and smiling Joy, who gracefully accepted the stalk and blew him a kiss. Very soon, the song was over, and the applause was no less thunderous. As Que, Qit, Ari and Penny made their way offstage, single-file, they exchanged high-fives with Henri and I as they passed by, chattering excitedly. The pantomime was next, an interpretation of the Broadway musical Cats and Dogs. Henri’s friends from the Ministry of Defense, Ryo, Bulk and Beatnik, were involved in the production and carried out their roles flawlessly. I looked on proudly as the actors tumbled about in the costumes I had helped with, and was glad to note there hadn’t been any tears in sight in spite of the actors’ required somersaults and acrobatics. After it ended, I strained my eyes as the lights were dimmed once again, and when they were switched on again, I saw that the curtain at the back had been lifted and noted the conductor and his orchestra waiting patiently on their seats. Very soon, Skye glided onstage from the opposite wing and the crowd broke into a rousing applause again. Once she reached center stage, she flung her arms outward, signaling the crowd to quieten down. They complied and she rewarded them with a grateful smile. “This will be our final number for tonight,” she said into the microphone she held in her grasp. Some of the audience booed and whined but she went on. “My only wish is that you enjoy this number. Thank you.” Then softly, slowly at first, she opened her mouth and her golden voice floated in the air like gossamer. With no musical instrument to focus on, she for once could give full attention solely to her singing, and I gasped as she sang the first word, in the archaic Laguna language, teasingly stretching it out, and then paused. Only then, taking the cue from her, the orchestra began to play, and she continued. She astounded me with her vocal prowess, drawling out her words, being able to sing continuously without a pause, never seeming to tire or gasp for air. It was a sad slow love song, and could be transformed both into a wedding vow or a dirge. It was about how strong a woman’s love for a man was, how she was willing to face all odds and how her love would survive till the end of time even after her mortal remains had crumbled to dust. I felt my heart break, looking at her singing her pain out for all to see, and self-consciously wiped away the tears accumulating in my eyes. I leaned back against Henri, sighing contentedly, then looked up and was surprised to see instead Que’s face staring directly out to the stage. Realizing my mistake, I quickly tried to draw myself away but his hand had already grabbed hold of my shoulder and held me in a vice grip. I leaned against him quietly, perhaps a little wonderingly, too, as I breathed in the scent of his heady perfume mixed with perspiration, swallowing uncomfortably as I watched Skye end her performance to a standing ovation. 23) The Auction Because the audience had screamed for encore and wouldn’t leave their seats after Skye had ended her performance, all the other Fighters had to troop back onstage again, Skye with a violin perched atop her shoulder; Henri, Que and Qit carrying their acoustic, lead and bass guitar in that order; Ari sitting behind his drums and Penny standing behind her keyboard. The crowd roared their approval as each Fighter showed off their skill one by one on their preferred musical instrument. After that, they played simultaneously, each blending melodiously with the other, and launched into a current Top Ten song. Most of the audience either clapped or stamped along with the beat, jumped up and down from where they sat or danced in the aisles. Very soon, the song was over. The Fighters took a final bow and trooped offstage as the audience gave another standing ovation that shook the whole stadium. “How come the majority of songs were slow numbers?” I had criticized, whispering to Henri. “Because Melizians love it, that’s why,” was his simple honest answer. We were all feeling exhausted by the time the last spectator had left and had no energy left to go celebrate at the Pizza Palless as we had planned earlier on. Once we reached home, we all retired to our bedrooms. I fell asleep even before my head hit the pillow. I was a nervous wreck the next day. The others tried to give me moral support, but one look at Penny’s happy confident face, whistling away without a care in the world, quickly made me stiffen and clam up. Skye helped me choose my outfit, but because I wasn’t comfortable with some of my unfamiliar old clothes, I finally opted for my new white Maranganese ensemble. When I went down the stairs with Skye who wore a lovely colorful silk frock, I saw that the others, including Ari, were already assembled near the bottom of the stairs. Penny looked resplendent in a deep blue velvet gown, with her hair coifed up, exposing the diamond choker she had on her long graceful neck more prominently. She was chatting amiably with her Uncle G., who greeted me warmly with a twinkle in his eyes. “I almost mistook you for a Maranganese bride just now,” he had quipped, making my cheeks burn uncontrollably. “Are you sure this is a wise idea, dressing in matrimonial white?” Ari had asked me. “We don’t want to give the bidders funny ideas, do we?” “I think the dress would suit you better if only you’d chuck the pants out,” Penny had laughed. “Much sexier, too. But then, being the prude you are, I’m sure you don’t have the nerve to do it.” “Stop it, you guys,” Skye warned them. “You’re making her more nervous.” I was even more nervous when I found out I was supposed to give a five-minute speech onstage to better introduce myself to prospective bidders. “What am I supposed to say?” I had wailed. “Just the usual,” Henri said, trying in vain to comfort me. Like the other guys, he was attired in a gentlemanly suit that looked smart on him. “Like your name, age, background and interests. That’s all.” “There’d better not be chains and shackles lying around,” I complained darkly. “Of course not,” Henri had chuckled. “I told you already, this isn’t a slave auction.” When we arrived at the elegant wide ballroom within the Country Leader’s official residence, I was glad to note that other than some unfamiliar faces, Ryo, Bulk and Beatnik had also been chosen for the auction exercise. Even Penny’s Hunky Dream Guy was there, too, and she really regretted not having the opportunity to bid for him. I cracked jokes with Ryo, Bulk and Beatnik about the event and they helped me feel more at ease. The lights were then dimmed, signaling the start of the program. Penny, Ryo, Bulk, Beatnik and I stood behind the stage, waiting for our names to be mentioned. Dark was the master of ceremony again, and after a brief opening speech from the Country Leader, proceeded to call out the people to be auctioned to come onstage one by one. I really disliked it when, other than name, age and profession, Dark was also reading out the person’s vital statistics, men and women alike. I peered out from behind the stage and made out the other Fighters, minus Penny, sitting in the third row. Ryo explained to me that the bidding system was confidential. There was a button placed underneath every seat, and whoever wanted to bid should press it. The bidding amount would be displayed on a liquid crystal display board on the wall. Once the triumphant bidder had made his final bid, nobody would know his identity until the date itself. “When will the date be?” I queried, forehead furrowed worriedly. “Tomorrow, at the ball,” Ryo had whispered back. “And how will we know whether our date is really the successful bidder?” I asked again. “After all, nobody knows his identity. Anybody can just come up and pretend he’s the one.” “It’s not as easy as that,” Ryo had answered, shaking his head. “After the auction, successful bidders will be given either a uniformed brooch or a tie pin to be given to his date tomorrow. So we’re supposed to know our date through his or her tie pin or brooch.” “Oh,” I had said, stumped for words. After a while, I saw Lawles, clad in a fitting black satin gown, creep up behind Que and tapping him on the shoulder. He looked up at her questioningly, then stood up and followed her as she beckoned him. Curious, I followed them to the back of the last row with my eyes. I saw Lawles giving a gift-wrapped box to Que and was disgusted to see her fling her arms around him and kiss him on the cheek when he cordially accepted it. They parted soon after, each returning to their own assigned seats. I was surprised to know that the bidding started at a thousand dollars. But I was glad to be reminded that the money, like the concert proceeds, would all go to charity. All too soon, Ryo’s turn came up. His final bid was at 35 thousand, and Bulk and Beatnik was at 25 thousand each. Penny’s was at 53 thousand, the highest amount so far, tying her to Mr. Hunky Dream Guy. When my name was called out, I forced my wobbling legs to walk, putting one step in front of the other. When I reached the stage, a nervous smile playing on my lips, I silently cursed all eyes which were fixed on me for forcing me to be involved in this against my will. I was also surprised to note that the auctioneer for this occasion was an unknown government officer, and that Dark himself was sitting in the front row. I saw his hand disappearing under his chair, and warning bells went off. I willed myself to be strong, and hoped I wouldn’t end up going out on a date with him instead. I tried to be true to myself, mentioning in my short speech that, as everybody should know by then, I had no recollection of the past and that my current favorite pastime was to seek out familiarity in my everyday life. It was corny but it was true, and I was surprised when the people seated in front of me applauded supportively. The traditional brass handheld bell clanged as the number on the LCD board increased. In the end, the auctioneer pronounced that the final bid was at an amazing 64 thousand dollars. That being said, I stepped off the stage dazedly and bumped into the eagerly-waiting Ryo. “Congratulations,” he cried, grabbing my hands and jumping up and down with joy. Behind him, Penny came up and smiled as she congratulated me She looked uncharacteristically happy that I was immediately suspicious of her. She only laughed when I told her this, and said I would find out why soon enough. When I reached home with Uncle C. driving the limousine – the others had taken their own cars – I was still in a daze. Even when the others patted me on the shoulder, congratulated and teased me, I still couldn’t believe that my forced blind date had cost some unlucky guy 64 thousand dollars. When I moodily stomped down the staircase for breakfast the next morning, having had a vivid nightmare the night before and woken on the wrong side of bed with an incessant throbbing headache, I found the others were curiously gathered around Ms. Sandy at the reception area. They cried excitedly when they saw me and Ms. Sandy quickly pressed a medium-sized package into my surprised hands. “Open it!” Penny ordered impatiently. Somebody handed me a pair of scissors and I used this to cut through the red ribbon that bound the white cardboard package. After tearing off the ribbons and some flimsy wrapper, I opened the lid of the box and peered inside. “It’s a –“ I began hesitantly. “A dress!” Penny finished my sentence. She snatched the blue-black gown from me and twirled it around, laughing as the dress’ unidentified material floated gracefully in the air. “There’s a card inside,” intoned Ari as he peered over my shoulder. Hearing this, Penny flung the dress back into the box I still held in my hands, and quickly snatched the note before anybody else could. “It’s from your date, Azure honey,” smirked Penny after reading it. I crept closer and saw that it was written on scented parchment. The handwriting seemed familiar somehow. “He wants you to wear this tonight. Oh, what a stupid, romantic fool!” “He also asked me to deliver this to you,” smiled Ms. Sandy, handing me a smaller velvet box. I kept it away from Penny and opened it, gasping at the platinum jewelry set in curlicues and accentuated with diamonds and aquamarine. “Look,” Penny cooed, her eyes wide. “A necklace, a bracelet and earrings!” “There’s also a matching embroidered evening bag and dark blue embroidered stilettos, too,” added Ms. Sandy as she passed them to me. “Hmm,” frowned Penny, then gave me a slap on the back. “He seems to be pretty fashionable. Heck, his sense of fashion is light years beyond your own, I’m afraid. I just hope, for your sake, though, that he’s not gay.” “Ah, but he sure must want you to look pretty tonight,” commented Qit with a slight smile. “Yeah,” I drawled sarcastically. “But he’d better not expect too much, though. By the way, who was he, Ms. Sandy? Do you know?” She smiled as she shook her head. “Sorry. I have no idea who he is. He had this sent by courier.” I walked everywhere that day in a daze, pondering over the identity of my date. Was he tall? Short? Lean? Fat? A gentleman? A lunatic? And perhaps, as Penny supposed, gay? When I went down to the dining room for tea time, hungry despite the heavy tomato rice lunch we had because I hadn’t much appetite then to eat, I was surprised to find that only Que was there. He wore a concentrated look as he held up a newspaper in his hands, leaning back comfortably against his chair and wagging his toes, which were resting atop the table, to a personal beat. I frowned at the plate of cookies near his feet and sighed. “How come the others aren’t here?” I greeted him, leaning against the table beside him and popping a walnut cookie into my mouth. Startled, he scrambled to sit upright, folding the newspaper hastily. “Hi, Azure,” he grinned sheepishly, scratching his head as I took the seat next to him. “I’m not sure where the others are. They’re probably not that hungry, I guess.” “So what’s in the papers today?” I queried, gesturing toward the badly creased newspaper. “Nothing much,” he replied. “The usual. Wars. Politics. Murder. Incest. That sort of thing.” “Really,” I said, reaching for another cookie. I wasn’t in the mood to read the news that day, so I wasn’t exactly sure what he was talking about. Then, remembering the half-burnt picture of him in my room, I asked, “I’ve been meaning to ask: have you ever been a best man? You know, at a wedding?” “Huh?” He gave me a baffled look. “What do you mean? I’ve never been anybody’s best man.” “Sorry,” I apologized, a little embarrassed that my guess had been off the mark. “My mistake.” He stared at me gobbling down the cookies before tentatively asking me, “Aren’t you supposed to be somewhere this evening?” “On a date, you mean?” I asked between mouthfuls. He nodded and I swallowed. “Relax, the ball starts at eight.” “You’re gonna meet him at the ball?” he asked confusedly. “No, silly,” I told him. “He’s coming here to pick me up.” He kept looking at me, clearly expecting me to elaborate. When I didn’t he asked again. “What time is he picking you up?” I frowned, a little annoyed that Que was being bothersome and uncharacteristically nosy. Then, in an exasperated bid to quiet him, I reached for the card in my side pocket and read the note. “Seven o’clock, driveway.” “So?” Que asked meaningfully. I merely stared at him. “So what?” I asked back. “It’s six o’clock already,” he told me, pointing toward the cuckoo clock on the wall opposite. I gazed at the clock for a second before jumping onto my feet. “Yikes,” I yelped. “I haven’t even showered! I’m sorry, but I have to go.” With that, I left the bewildered Que and sped up toward my room. Instead of luxuriating myself in the bathtub, I took a short soak instead and got ready to change. But standing there in my terry robe, looking down at the gown I had laid atop my bed, I suddenly realized I didn’t even know where to start. Luckily Skye was still in her room when I intercommed her. She laughed when she heard the panic in my voice and quickly went to my room, carrying a professional makeup box and a hairstyler kit with her. She helped me with the dress, which was a little snug here and there but otherwise all right. She helped with the makeup and styled my hair, though she couldn’t be as creative as she wanted to as my hair was still short. She even lent me her new rose-scented perfume. Finally, she helped me with the jewelry and upon completion, asked me to view myself at the full-length mirror. So I did just that, peering at my profile from one angle to the next. “Do I look OK?” I asked worriedly. “You look like a dream,” Skye complimented, tilting her head back and laughing. “Don’t frown too much – we don’t want it to permanently scar your features.” I stared at her, disbelief on my face. She laughed some more and put both hands on my shoulders. I realized suddenly that we shared the same height. “Believe me,” she promised. “Men won’t look elsewhere except at you once you enter the room. And believe me, I know what I’m talking about. Now go out there and meet your man! I know you’re gonna make him very happy tonight.” There was an almost sad look in her eyes as she said this, and I surmised that her meaning went more than skin-deep. But before I could say anything, she made me put on my high heels and threw the evening purse for me to catch. Then, she whirled me around and pushed me out the door. I wasn’t very sure why, but my heart was beating painfully faster than normal as I slowly and self-consciously made my way down the stairs. At the bottom, I found Henri talking to Ms. Sandy. “My, my,” I greeted him. “You look very good in that suit.” It was true, his unbuttoned white blazer and shiny black-red waistcoat with the intricate design looked excellent on him. “Thanks,” he blushed, then seemed to fidget. Ms. Sandy excused herself, saying she had to attend to something upstairs. I took the opportunity to ask Henri what the matter was. “Nothing,” was all he said. I stared at him, taking in his new suit, new perfume, new shoes, new haircut even and the pathetic impatient air one had during an agonizingly long period of waiting. Cruel though it might sound, I decided to test a theory. So I winked and asked him, “You’re Penny’s date, aren’t you?” His startled hurt look was ample answer for me. I was suddenly aware of a tightening feeling in my chest, as if the truth had pained me somehow. “How did you know?” he asked, and my heart plummeted. “Just a lucky guess,” I replied, forcing myself to smile. Hey, wake up, Azure! Be happy for him! This is after all your bestest friend in the world! I took in his crumpled face and tentatively reached out to comfort him. “What’s the matter now, huh?” “Nothing,” replied Henri, and I suddenly realized how dejected he looked. “It’s just that she asked Ms. Sandy to deliver this to me.” He passed me a note and I read it. It seemed that Penny had other commitments and apologized profusely for not turning up. “I heard from Ms. Sandy,” said Henri through gritted teeth, “that during the auction, she had allegedly asked her uncle to bid for Jea Filippe a.k.a. Mr. Hunky Dream Guy. My guess is that she’d already left to meet up with him.” My heart went out to him. I took his hand and squeezed it. “What do you see in her anyway?” He sighed before answering, “An amazing woman with amazing beauty and amazing grace. Intelligent, competent, witty, fun to be with, always open and honest about what she thinks.” “Yeah, well,” I pondered over her constant bickering and biting remarks and decided that was another way of looking at her. “I thought you said her verbal diarrhea bothered you?” “Initially, it did,” he admitted. “But after a while, it grew on me. Now I find that I don’t mind it at all.” He then glanced at his watch and asked what time my date would pick me up. “Seven,” I told him. “Well, then, you’d better get going,” he told me. “It’s fifteen past already.” As I yelped and smacked my forehead, he moaned. “Azure, how come you seldom wear your watch?” “Because I’m too lazy to,” I said, turning to go. Then I stopped, looking back at him. “You OK? You are coming to the ball, aren’t you?” “Yeah, I suppose so,” he replied half-heartedly. “I’ll just go back to my room and lie down first. I might be a bit late, though. And Sandy had better not tell a soul.” “I’ll be expecting you at the ball then,” I told him, giving his hand a final squeeze and quickly went out to the porch outside. For some reason, Que was leaning against his car when I pushed open the front doors. He raised one eyebrow, giving me a quizzical look as I peered to the left and right. “Has he come and left?” I asked anxiously as he sauntered up to me, a huge grin spreading across his face. “M-my date, I mean?” He only smiled as he passed me the bouquet of flowers he was holding and took out a gold-plated brooch designed as a Melizian waterlily, the national flower. I stared dazedly at him as he quietly pinned the brooch on my dress. “You’re my date?” My jaw dropped when he happily nodded yes. 24) The Ball Afterward, everything seemed to pass by me like a blur. I felt as if I was immersed in water, barely hearing what people said to me, barely even realizing what was transpiring around me as the evening progressed. For some reason, I thought Que looked proud whenever he introduced me to the curious on-looking dignitaries. He hardly left my side, leaving only to get some drinks for me. After we arrived, I saw that Skye was slow dancing contentedly in Dark’s arms. She seemed glad to see Que and I, and didn’t seem at all surprised that the two of us came together. Penny was another matter altogether. As she danced close by with Jea Filippe, I saw the shocked look on her face at the sight of Que standing tall and smart with a constant hand on the small of my back. She accidentally stepped on Jea’s foot and looked as if she wanted to stop and talk to us, but Jea evidently didn’t feel the same and spurred her on. We also saw Qit standing alone near the punch table, raising a goblet up at us as we smiled at him from afar. Like Skye, he didn’t seem surprised at all, and I realized that Que must have had informed his brother about his plan earlier on. Ari danced by us in a little while, keeping in step with fumbling Joy, and though he seemed shocked to see me linking arms with Que, he bit his tongue and didn’t say a word. “Who’s your charming date, Que?” A balding white-haired high-ranking government officer thumped Que on the back, eyes twinkling. Que quickly introduced me to Rolan Lyes, who evidently already knew who I was. “You’re not dancing or eating? Everyone else is.” Que looked around the crowded room and shook his head. “Maybe later,” he promised. Then, when Lyes had left us, Que quickly looked around and determined that everybody else was engrossed in his or her own activities. He grabbed me by the arm and hastily made his way out the door with me, saying, “We’d better hurry before anyone misses us. I just can’t stand too many people gawking at us.” As we exited the building, I almost bumped into forlorn-looking Henri who had just arrived. He looked surprised to see us, but was not shocked. He only managed to ask as we rushed by, “Where are you two heading?” “Off for a quiet dinner,” replied Que, putting a finger up against his lips. “Don’t tell anyone, you hear?” “Never seen you the whole day,” agreed Henri, winking at me and giving me two thumbs up. “All the best.” Que then took me for a spin. He made small talk and stole glances at me when he thought I wasn’t looking. I kept quiet most of the time, and knew better than to ask him where he was taking me. After about half an hour, he stopped and parked in front of a classy-looking Dench restaurant. He opened the door for me and took my hand, then guided me in with one hand firmly placed upon my back. The restaurant was dimly lit and upon entering, we were greeted cordially and ushered toward a round candle-lit table near the end. As I arranged my dress and sat down on the chair Que had thoughtfully pulled out for me, I looked around the empty room. “There are no other customers except us,” I whispered. Que nodded, smiling. “That’s the way I like it.” “You booked the whole place?” I asked, stunned. He nodded, his lips fixed in a captivating smile. The live jazz band played their sweet music as we tucked into our dinner. I was famished, and finished my food clean. After I had dabbed the corners of my lips with my napkin, Que stood up and extended an arm out to me, asking me to dance. I looked up at his earnest smiling face, realized I didn’t have much choice anyway, then took the proffered hand. Que led me to the middle of the room as the band started playing a slow number. I tentatively took both of his hands in mine with the intention of keeping a safe distance away but he quickly shook one hand free and pulled me close in a tight embrace, knocking the breath out of me. I was surprised to note that my head fit the space under his chin snugly and with one hand resting on the small of my back, he used the other to run his fingers through my hair, the light pressure ensuring that I kept my head rested against him. I forgot how to dance as my head was filled with the scent of his intoxicating perfume. My feet moved along on its own accord, though we didn’t dance much, just swaying gently to the beat. I could hear his heart thumping loudly and wondered whether he could hear mine, too. He then gazed at me and finally murmured in my ear, “You have the most beautiful eyes.” He gave a small laugh at the disbelief shown on my face and added, “Did I tell you that you look enchanting tonight?” I shook my head in answer. When I stopped shaking, he brushed my lips tenderly with his index finger. I quickly turned my face away. “Please don’t,” I implored him. “Why not?” he sighed as he tightened his grip around my waist. Again, he peered into my eyes and I thought I saw within his a conflict of emotions. “The others warned me about this,” he confided in me, though his words didn’t make much sense to me then. “But they finally relented and granted me this one night to be with you.” To my further discomfort, he buried his face in my hair and inhaled my floral shampoo scent. “That’s what I thought I wanted. But now that I’m here with you, I realize that I want to be with you, not just tonight, but for all time.” I refused to acknowledge that my heart skipped a beat when I heard this, and instead I asked, “What about Lawles then?” He stopped dancing and held me at arm’s length. “What about her?” “I thought you both looked rather chummy last night at the auction,” I went straight to the point. He groaned inwardly. “Oh, that. She wanted to give me a cake she’d baked herself, but wasn’t sure I’d take it. When I did, she was extremely delighted.” Then he gave me a sly grin. “You’re not jealous, are you? I threw away the cake afterward, if you must know.” “Jealous? Why would I be jealous?” I scoffed. He took me in his arms and we started dancing again, both quiet. Finally he stopped and gripped my shoulders hard. I was surprised, then looked up to see him staring intently at me. “I can’t stand it any longer,” he told me, voice quivering. His words made me worry even more. “You’re scaring me, Que,” I told him as I shrugged his hands off me, turning to go. “I think we’d better leave.” But I stopped in my tracks when he hurried toward me and reached out from behind to hold me tight. “Please don’t go now,” he whispered throatily, nuzzling my ear and causing me to gulp nervously. “It’s all right. There’s nothing to be frightened of. I’m here with you.” “That’s what’s bothering me,” I told him frankly, trying to disengage myself but he stubbornly held on. “Look,” I finally told him, getting a little irritated. “It’s like this: I don’t like being made a fool of and I don’t like guys promising empty nothings just to score with me.” “Is that what you think?” he asked quietly, though his hands never left my side. “Am I the flashy guy you meant during counseling? Because I’m not, Azure. Believe me, I’m not like that at all.” I scoffed and tried to wriggle my way out of his grasp, but to no avail. “I need you, Azure,” he whispered, his voice thick with emotion. “Stop saying that,” I yelled at him. “I bet you say that to every woman you meet.” “No, I don’t,” he said earnestly. “You know I don’t.” “How would I know?” I retorted. “I’m no mind-reader.” He sighed, tightening his grip still. “Trust me,” he said simply. “And why should I?” I felt like he was squeezing the breath out of me. “Please,” he implored. “Believe in me.” “Why the heck should I?” I sputtered. He only moaned and buried his face in my hair once more. “Because I’m your husband.” It took a whole minute for his words to actually sink in. When it happened, everything turned to a standstill. I automatically stopped doing anything: I stopped shaking uncontrollably, I stopped thinking clearly, heck, I even stopped breathing for a moment. After a while, I finally managed to find my voice, then asked quietly, “What did you just say?” “Here, I’ll prove it to you,” he declared, unaware that my rage was slowly building up within me. With one hand still encircling me, he took out his wallet and showed me his small plastic-laminated marriage certificate. I struck it out of his hands without even looking at it. My brain was screaming at me. Was all this true? If yes, how come I didn’t remember anything at all? “Don’t – lie – to – me,” I told him through gritted teeth, finally finding enough strength to push him away quite forcibly. I snatched my bag from the table and hurried out the door before Que could follow. Outside, I kicked off my stilettos and began running barefoot down the street, warm silent tears sliding down my face and blotching my makeup, causing many a passerby to stare at me. Pretty soon, a familiar black car drove up beside me and kept pace with every furious stride I took. Que’s dark-tinted window lowered and from the corners of my eyes I saw Que staring straight ahead at the road in front of him. “Get in,” he said quietly. I ignored him and prepared to walk even faster. “Get in,” he roared this time, making me jump. He braked, opened the door to show he was serious, grabbed my hand and pulled me toward the passenger door. “Get in,” he repeated firmly as he opened the door for me. I obediently sat down and Que slammed the door shut, and a new batch of tears which I had successfully prevented from falling did just that, in a cascade. He drove slowly, silently, as my shoulders heaved with sobs. “What did you intend to do?” he finally implored softly. “Walk all the way home?” Not being able to say much, I nodded my head tearfully. He suddenly swerved to the side and braked, then looked around at me. He awkwardly took out a handkerchief and gently dabbed my tears with it, saying soothingly, “There, there. I’m sorry. Please don’t cry.” Then, when the tears came down all the more, he flung the hanky aside and took me in his arms, letting me drench his shoulder completely. When we reached home, for some reason I wasn’t surprised to find Skye waiting for me downstairs. She took in my swollen eyes, shot a quizzical look at Que who answered her with a stony gaze, wisely kept her mouth shut and took my limp hand from Que’s. She led me to my room, helped me change and tucked me in. She switched off the lights and prepared to go, but I called out to her. “What’s the matter?” she gently asked, sitting near the edge of my bed. “Do you feel you’re ready to talk?” I could only nod in answer. She sighed, taking both my hands in hers. “My poor, poor Azure,” she kissed my forehead tenderly. “He told you everything, didn’t he?” Again, I nodded, broken hearted. I had almost succeeded in persuading myself to believe that Que had been lying to me, but now Skye’s confession had dashed that flimsy belief against rocks. I could do nothing but croak, “So it’s true, then? And you all conspired against me? How could you? I trusted you!” She tentatively put an arm around me, then gave me a slight hug. I tried to resist at first but then gave in, already past caring anyway. “Please forgive us, Azure. I know what we did might seem abominable to you, but we really had our reasons.” “What reason could be good enough to make you so cruel to me?” I seethed, and buried my face into the pillow so I didn’t have to look at her. “A lot of reasons,” Skye ambled on. “Medical reasons, confidentiality clause…” I looked up suspiciously. “What medical reasons? Was it because I looked so different from the way I was before? Because I act differently now? Do you think I’m not Azure the Newcomer?” She stared at me before answering, “If you must know, then the answer is yes.” I groaned and sank back onto the pillow, shutting my eyes, willing my ears to be deaf to her words. “Your situation is rather complicated, you see,” she began with some difficulty. “First, there’s the question of your hand. It’s different. Second is the fact that you don’t have your dark tattoo anymore. Thirdly, the chip implanted in you is missing, though frankly that makes sense since you have lost your hand. Fourthly is the fact that you and I look almost identical, so there’s also the possibility we had other twins out there we don’t know about and you could be one of them. And finally, you had been missing for so long, so long in fact that we had almost given up hope of ever finding you again.” “What do you mean?” I cried out at her. “All these are weak, they’re not strong enough to prove I’m not Azure! I’d still be Azure even after I’ve lost my hand, my mark, my chip, right? What about fingerprints? Dental records, even? How about moles or birthmarks on me?” She wore an intense look as she peered into my eyes. “You didn’t have a birthmark on you, and in fact, there was supposed to be a distinctive mole on your cheek – it’s not there now. Yes, I know you could have had it removed when you went missing, but still, it made us doubt. And your records? They’ve all been burned, Azure. There aren’t any official records of you. That’s why we couldn’t positively identify you.” “What?” I couldn’t believe my ears. “Whatever are you talking about?” “We believe,” explained Skye patiently, “that somebody planned to finish you off, and they were the ones who abducted you. For some reason, you got away from your captors before they did anything drastic, but not before they had burned the hospital and part of the Ministry of Defense building where we kept your personal records as if in a desperate bid to wipe out evidence of your existence.” “They burned the hospital?” I didn’t know. “And the MoD, too?” Skye nodded. “The hospital you stayed in was the new one.” “But why would anyone want to kill me?” I began to wonder, then frowned. “Being Fighters, we’re not exactly well-liked by everyone,” Skye gave a wry smile. “We’ve made many enemies, and some of them see us enough of a threat to cause us mortal harm. “Before you went missing, you were sent on a covert mission. Even I don’t know what it is you were supposed to do then. All I know now is that the mission allowed you access to highly confidential information, information which we believe now to be valuable enough to make stealing it from you highly profitable, to say the least. “We weren’t sure whether you remembered the mission, and personally I am glad you never brought it up, to me or to anyone else, indicating that you have no recollection of it at all. That’s very good, you see, because you were labeled a top priority risk. I fear to imagine what fate should befall you should you even breathe one word of it to anyone.” I laughed bitterly, thinking it was a joke. But when she stared at me in that curious way, I stopped, realizing that she was deadly serious. “We knew it was a mistake to let Que be too close to you,” she then sighed, while I dejectedly stared up at the ceiling, lost in thought. “By being close to you, there was the risk that you might remember, and once you remembered, it’d be a matter of time before you told somebody about it, and then that’d put you in jeopardy. But warning him and keeping watch over him, in case he attempted anything foolish, was pointless. He’s so darned obstinate at times, he just couldn’t stay away from you.” I lay quietly, still staring wretchedly at the ceiling, wishing that I could just die there and then and escape the numbing iciness I felt constricting my heart. Skye tried to approach me but I told her curtly, “Get out.” She stared at me for a while, then silently walked out, shutting the door behind her with a click. 25) The Police That night, anger, hurt, frustration, disbelief and shock were only some of the feelings that went through me. I felt like a complete fool, I wasn’t only devastated, I felt humiliated as well. I felt I was so stupid not to have caught on earlier. I knew Que was attracted to me but it never really crossed my mind that we had something very serious between us. Lucky to have my own private room, I allowed myself to cry my heart out without danger of somebody seeing me. Each time I thought I had dried up my well of tears, that I couldn’t possibly have enough moisture left in my body to brew a new batch, I remembered what happened that night and fresh tears came down in a torrent. I thought I would never succumb to sleep, but then, when dawn was threatening the night sky, and feeling emotionally drained and exhausted, my eyelids drooped and sleep finally caught up with me. I had a funny dream then, though funnily enough it had nothing to do with Que’s revelation. And like before, I felt I had a strong sense of identity. In the dream I did not talk, communicating instead telepathically. I found myself in a spacious oval-shaped office. It wasn’t well lighted, and I saw the profile of an old man sitting with his back toward me. He was seated behind the desk near the wide windowpanes on the far side of the room. Power and status seemed to emanate from him and the whole room seemed to pulsate with the strength of his aura. I walked up to him stealthily but he obviously knew I was there because he swung around on his high-backed chair when I approached his wide rectangular mahogany desk. “Newcomer,” he smiled broadly up at me. “It’s been a long time, but I’ve been expecting you. What can I possibly do for you today?” In my dream I knew who he was, and told him the reason why I had sought him out. He only cackled and sneered at this. “You can’t come barging in with mere accusations,” he had laughed aloud. “In today’s world, one needs concrete proof if one’s aim is to win in the court room.” I had scoffed at this, pointing out that nobody was aware I was in the room with him and hinted that I could do him bodily harm without anyone suspecting me. This quickly quietened him, though the mocking grin he had never left his creased face. “You’re here to seek the truth, aren’t you?” he had jeered. “Alright, you don’t have to break my arm in the process. Which part of the truth do you want to hear?” The true version, I had intoned. He had sighed and made a steeple with his hands. “Alright, but which part?” Everything, from the beginning. He sighed again and rested his elbows on his desk surface. “OK, I’ll admit it. We made a mistake when we first started the Fighter program. Dr. Marcox was supposed to head the whole lot of you, and he was never to leave you alone unsupervised. “But when Qit pushed him off the ledge – yes, of course we’re sure of our facts – we hired Ms. Sandy as a sort of replacement. But the person who hired her neglected to mention how young she was, hardly capable of managing a group of rowdy teenagers with an iron rod, which was what we had originally wanted, but by then the committee had already decided and we couldn’t retract our decision. “Besides, by then the harm had already been done. We handpicked each and every one of you. Your general good looks were more effective than the most aggressive promotion campaign, and we managed to secure your popularity and the masses loved you and supported the Fighter Group Program wholeheartedly. We succeeded in capturing the world’s interest, too, and this has been a great boost for the committee in the political circle. You pupils made excellent students, and our investment in your education and training was well worth it. You far surpassed our initial expectations, and we’re more than pleased to find you loyal Melizian robots capable, efficient and resilient. “We felt it was important to house all of you together to instill a deep sense of familial camaraderie which should result in excellent teamwork. But in our zeal to create Melize’s perfect fighting team, we overlooked one thing: the fact that you were after all still children, and in dire need of guidance, security and shelter that only adults could offer. And what resulted from that was the greatest mistake of all times. “I’m sure you understand what I’m talking about. Your cheeks are red – is it possible that you still think about it even today? Whatever the case may be, you have paid, and quite dearly, too, I must say. Well, we tried our best to conceal the facts from the public but of course the media somehow got wind of it somehow and in the end we were cornered into admitting. I was very glad when the mess was finally cleared up, though the whole program’s perspective has shifted greatly afterward. “What’s that? You want to talk about more recent times? Yes, well, since you are so insistent to get me to admit – yes, we abducted you from your home and brought you to Mugamba, but then somebody interfered, and we lost you. Happy now to know the truth?” What happened? I had asked and he shrugged. “All I know is that my men were attacked and that the attackers took you after the scuffle.” Their identity? He shook his head. “Unsure. But we believe they were the ones responsible for destroying your bionic hand. Had they not done that, we would have zoomed in on the homing device planted there and finished you off before the Fighters could come to your rescue.” So the attackers had been my rescuers, and made it possible for me to live and dream that night. Do you realize I can implicate your granddaughter? He merely laughed amusedly. “Only if you gather enough proof. Do you think she’s stupid enough to let herself be caught?” I can make her life a living hell, I told him simply. He seemed to contemplate this and decided I was serious. “Only if you succeed,” he finally said, his beady small eyes challenging mine. I considered this then turned to go, but he stopped me. Evidently he wasn’t through with me yet. “You know you’ve been very lucky so far,” he told me in a threatening way. “But a lucky streak will end sooner or later. And when it does, be sure that she will be ready for you. She will not waste the opportunity to attack you in your moment of weakness.” Only if I give her that chance, I had smirked at him. He met my penetrating stare and cautioned me, “Don’t be too confident. The outcome is still undetermined as of yet. You won’t always win, Azure Blue. She will strike the very moment you lower your guard.” I laughed and shrugged it off. I whirled around then proceeded to walk toward the door and paused when he gave me his final advice. It never crossed my mind then that his words were prophetic. “If I were you, I’d try to find out what had actually transpired in the past,” he said slyly. “Your memory during your waking hours isn’t what it used to be, isn’t it? My advice is for you to carefully sieve the information you receive. Decide wisely, and separate truth from fiction. You’re bound to discover some interesting facts sooner or later.” His cackling was the last I remembered. I woke up to a bed drenched with sweat and squinted as the morning light streamed in through the windows. I felt pretty lethargic that day and chose to stay in bed all day. But then I realized if I kept this up, I’d be too used to it, so I didn’t bother asking Eva to bring food up to me as I seemed to have lost all appetite anyway. But Skye crept up to my room, bearing breakfast on a tray, ignored the silent treatment I gave her as if nothing had happened and forced me to eat at least a few spoonfuls. I thought if anybody wanted to bring my lunch up it’d be her, too, so I was surprised when there was a tentative knock on the door, then Henri came in with my tray of steaming chicken rice. I at first refused to look at him, feeling angry and disappointed at him joining the others in the conspiracy against me. “How’re you feeling?” he asked. I turned my back sullenly on him and tried to ignore him, but found I couldn’t ignore the rice. I inhaled the fragrance and my stomach suddenly growled. My appetite returned with a force. I put my pride aside and began gobbling up the food. I felt much better then when I had more energy. “We’re all so worried about you.” “So everybody knows, huh?” I smiled dejectedly. “Yeah,” shrugged Henri, then turned sincere doleful eyes on me. “We’re really sorry about keeping it a secret from you. Most of us didn’t want to actually, but Skye convinced us that you weren’t ready to face the whole truth, at least not just yet. I did try to tell you on several occasions, but each time I wanted to I would hear in my head Skye telling me not to, for your own sake.” “It’s OK,” I said resignedly now that I was in a calmer state of mind. “I understand.” He hesitated before plunging in with the next question, “So? Has Que come in to see you?” I answered dispiritedly, “No, not after last night. Besides, I don’t think I’m ready to see his face yet. Why?” “Nothing,” he said. After a pause, he continued, “If you must know, it’s actually a good thing you didn’t come down this morning. There was a battle royale during breakfast.” “Really?” I asked interestedly. “What about?” “About Que unable to put a lid on it, that’s what,” he replied. “It was Que versus the world, the leader of the pack being Skye, of course.” “What did they say?” “They were all arguing and pointing fingers and blaming each other. Skye even said some nasty things to Que, who stormed out of the house.” “Really? Skye did that? I thought almost nothing could ruffle her feathers.” “Yeah, well, she did. Guess she feels strongly about this, too.” “How’s Penny, by the way?” Henri groaned. “Let’s not talk about her now. We were focusing on you, remember?” “I just want to know whether she knows her bidder was you,” I explained. “Have you told her?” Henri sighed. “No, she has no clue. And I prefer it to be this way. For now.” “Scaredy cat,” I sneered and laughed. I couldn’t possibly be angry with this best friend of mine for long, especially after his sincere and profuse apologies, even though he did let me down initially. He pretended to be furious with me and grabbed a pillow. He threatened to hit me with it, so I threw up my hands defensively. “OK, OK, that’s enough. I know, I won’t mention her name.” But when he lowered the pillow down, I muttered under my breath, “Chicken.” He flashed angry eyes at me and I began to apologize amid gales of laughter, feeling way lighter and better than when I had woken up that morning. “I hope you don’t mind me saying this,” he said as he sat down at the edge of the bed. “But you’re my best pal, and it really worries me to see you like this. Let’s get a breath of fresh air, shall we?” “No, thanks,” I said. “Maybe later, but not now.” He shrugged. “It’s your choice.” “I just wished I’d known about Que being my … my … you know what,” I confided in him, resolutely refusing to give in to another crying session. “When he told me, I felt like such a fool. I was so heartbroken, I really didn't know. I felt like you guys had killed me. I knew you weren’t supposed to tell me, but damn it, I should have read the signs! I merely thought he liked me; I just never imagined it was more complicated than that.” “You know,” said Henri gently. “Now that you mention it, there were a lot of signs. How could you have possibly missed it? The wedding ring he still wears everywhere he goes, the way he dressed – always in your favorite colors, the way he would pour onto himself your favorite brands of perfume, the way he paid extra attention to you … ” “Enough, enough,” I told him, feeling a migraine coming. “I get the picture. Guess I’m still a bit slow, huh?” “I never said that,” said Henri sympathetically. “Remember, those were your words, not mine. But it did surprise me you never realized it; it was so evident he was going all out to get you back into his life.” “Sorry my brain caught up too late,” I said sarcastically. We were silent for a while, then Henri opened his mouth and said awkwardly, “I can only imagine how angry you feel toward him now, Azure, but Que really – “ “Stop it!” I cut in. “I’m tired and I don’t wanna think about it anymore. OK?” “OK. But what are you gonna do now?” Henri asked concernedly. I heaved a long sigh. “I don’t know. In some strange bizarre way I think I can understand where he’s coming from. Besides, what choice do I have anyway? I guess it wouldn’t be right for me to avoid him all my life.” “You mean, you’re gonna go back to him?” There was something in his voice that made me worry. “Not now, I somehow feel uneasy about it,” I admitted. “Whenever he’s around, I always feel uncomfortable, feel as if I had to get away from him. Funny, huh? But eventually, I think I will go back. Why?” He opened his mouth to speak, had second thoughts, then shut his mouth again. “Go on,” I throttled him. “Spit it out. What is it?” “It’s just that,” he coughed, “it’s just that it’s way more complex than you think.” “What?” I asked, piqued. “Is it about me going back to him? Or what? Is there some other secret you’re not telling me? Like, is he my long-lost brother? No? Was he gonna divorce me? No? Did he find someone else when I was gone? Well, spit it out, then! I’m tired of playing this stupid game!” “I just want to give you a piece of advice,” he finally murmured. “As your friend, I’d like you to dig up your past, Azure. But I’m afraid it’d have to be on your own; I can’t help you there. It’s very important for you to realize what happened. I can’t say much on this matter; Skye has put me under oath, and I wouldn’t want to endanger you unnecessarily. You know her orders were to do you away should you remember about your last mission and tell others about it, right?” “Yeah, I know,” I frowned. “And if you must know, I had a funny dream last night, where this old man was telling me the exact same thing.” I proceeded to tell him what I remembered, and he listened intently without saying a word. “But I find it hard to believe Skye would ever find it in her heart to kill me. Why did the government give such barbaric directions to her anyway? This isn’t the middle ages.” “It wasn’t the government,” replied Henri earnestly. “We have reasons to believe the order came straight from the Inner Circle. You know, of the Global Committee.” “Really?” I asked surprisedly. “I didn’t realize we communicate with them. Especially Skye, since she resigned her Bearer office.” “We don’t usually,” replied Henri. “Well, at least not directly. But I think you should know, nobody could be sure what goes on in Skye’s mind. It’s like a bottomless chasm. I know she’s mightily fond of you now, but I’d watch out if I were you. You know Skye, she’s so unfathomable it’s difficult to predict her move. Besides, she does have a motive against you – Dark.” “Oh yeah,” I said, my forehead creased. “Was he always so problematic, Henri?” “Well,” replied Henri, pondering. “I wasn’t there when both of you first met him, but I remember being told he was very much attached to Skye back then. There were rumors about you liking him, too, but when you realized they were both very much in love, you backed off. “But that was before things changed. You became a Bearer and Dark, who’s a descendant of the blood-drinking Verie creature of folklore, is naturally attracted to the dark side of you. But by then, you were completely over him and totally ignored him. I guess it could’ve been revenge that compelled him to take Skye in as his wife. I mean, if you can’t get a girl, why not settle for someone who resembles her, at least?” “No,” I said, astounded. “That’s gross! I can’t believe he’d ever stoop that low to do that to Skye. I mean, can’t he see how wonderful she is? At the concert, couldn’t he see how people adored her? Why would he want some other girl? Is he blind? Doesn’t he realize how lucky he is? Besides, she seems intelligent enough. Can’t she figure out she shouldn’t marry a man who didn’t love her?” “Ah, but then she didn’t realize it. And anyway, nobody can grasp the human mind completely,” said Henri mysteriously. “You know,” I suddenly smiled at him tenderly. “I’m really glad that you came, that we had this chat. I know I was mightily mad at you, I was so disappointed in you, but not anymore. You always know how to make me feel better, you know.” “Yeah, well,” said Henri pessimistically. “That’s what best friends are for.” “I can’t believe Penny can’t see what a great guy you are.” “Well,” said Henri thoughtfully, “Penny always thinks of me as merely your best pal; I don’t think she’ll ever notice me individually, not when there are better-looking guys out there.” “Stop saying that,” I chided him. “Like you said before, Penny isn’t stupid. I’m sure she’ll come to realize that good looks aren’t everything. Well, if not now, maybe later.” “Hey, you’re finished eating?” Henri asked, standing up abruptly, pointing toward the chicken bones on my plate, forcing an end to the conversation. I nodded and he put the plate on the tray. “Good. I want you to eat more, you hear me? Are you coming down for tea later on? No? Well, I’ll come again then and we can both go down for dinner together, OK?” I had no other alternative so I nodded my head. He said goodbye and left with the tray in his hands. Henri came knocking on the door at dinnertime and I stuck my head out, asking him whether Que was around. He shook his head and told me he hadn’t seen Que since breakfast. So I went down cautiously and sure enough, no Que was present. He didn’t even return for dinner and the seat beside me was empty for the entire course. The others were uncharacteristically quiet and subdued, giving me the occasional curious glance, and for a change I was glad nobody said anything to me. After dinner, I couldn’t wait to return to my room and escape the oppressing atmosphere, so I was the first to throw my napkin down upon the table and excuse myself. But just as I approached the reception area, Que himself came in through the front doors. I stiffened as our eyes met, then I coldly turned around and hurried toward the staircase without saying a word, though not before I saw him open his mouth as if to call out to me. Ms. Sandy, who was on the phone when Que came in, promptly put the phone down and said, “Que, thank God you’re here. The guards at the grounds’ main entrance just alerted me that somebody wants to see you.” She paused then added, “It’s the police.” That made me stop short. I looked back and saw Que telling Ms. Sandy that he’d be waiting for them in the lounge, then he cast his hurt eyes on me and walked off while Ms. Sandy went to the front doors to wait for the police and usher them in. 26) The Red Car Although I wasn’t comfortable being around Que after last night, I was still curious to find out what the police wanted. Did my husband do something wrong? If not, why else would they be here? Henri then came looking for me, found me standing still at the staircase and pulled my hand, saying that we should all go the lounge and listen to whatever it was the police had to say. So I let Henri drag me to the lounge area, where all the others were already assembled. Que was sitting on the cowhide sofa, talking to Qit. He looked up when I entered the room, refused to acknowledge me when he saw me turn to look elsewhere and resumed his conversation with his brother. Henri went and sat on a blue velvet armchair and I sat perched on its armrest. Pretty soon, two policemen walked in. Skye introduced them to everybody and they shook hands with all of us. As they took a seat, Eva came in with tea and cookies for everyone, Que asked them what the matter was. “It’s nothing much,” said the first officer. “It’s just that we’ve finally succeeded in busting a syndicate of international car thieves.” “Congratulations,” said Que. “Thank you,” replied the officer, looking a little flustered. “But that’s not it. The reason we’ve come to see you is actually this.” He passed a brown envelope to Que, who opened it and pulled out a few snapshots. I saw that as Que began inspecting the pictures, his face turned deathly pale and his hands shook. Qit asked to see them and Que, albeit some reluctance, passed the photographs over to him. Meanwhile, the policeman was talking away. “They’ve changed the plate number but we were able to track down its owner through the chassis number. It’s a metallic crimson 600A Spitfire Pereli coupe, with 12 cylinders and a capacity of 6000 cc. We believe the car to be registered under your name and would like to seek your verification in this matter. Here, the details are all here in this report.” He passed Que another envelope and I saw Que slowly tear it, took out the report and stared at it. “Let me see that,” I hissed at Skye who was looking at the pictures with a shocked expression on her face. But strangely enough, Skye was highly reluctant to hand them over. So in the end I simply tore them off her hands, and the others’ alarmed cries confirmed my suspicion that something was wrong. I stared dumbfounded at the photographs and my heart sank when I realized what it was the others didn’t want to let on. Furious, I marched up to Que who finally looked up at me and flung the pictures down at him. “This was mine, wasn’t it? This was the one you gave to Pereli? The one that got stolen? What’s wrong with you?” Qit tried to restrain me but I pushed him aside. Unable to control my hurt, I ran out of the room and tore down the corridor, going out of the mansion through the front doors. There, screaming in pain and rage, I kicked at the brick wall outside and banged them with my fists, again and again till I felt exhausted but more in control of my emotions. Then I stood there leaning against the wall, panting. Pretty soon the door beside me creaked open. I turned my head to look, expecting to see Henri’s calming face peer out, but instead Que himself appeared. I folded my arms defensively, my eyes flashing, as he caught sight of me and walked up to me. I pursed my lips and lowered my gaze, focusing on the marble beneath my feet. He sighed and joined me, leaning against the wall with his hands in his pockets, staring down at his big feet as well. We spent some time doing nothing, saying nothing. A few moments passed and then Que opened his mouth to speak. “The police are still inside,” he began, then paused as if he didn’t know what else to say. I snorted. He in turn pawed his feet on the ground nervously. “Look,” he finally said. “I’m deeply sorry if I’ve made you angry. But it’s all in the past now; can’t we just forgive and forget? There’s no use crying over spilt milk.” “I just hate it when you all act so secretive,” I exploded. “Why couldn’t you tell me about the car when Pereli came? Why couldn’t you be straight with me?” He gazed at me with a strained expression on his face. “Because I was afraid of what your reaction might be when you found out.” “So now that I’ve found out anyway,” I glared at him, “how’s my reaction? Happy with it?” He looked at me and said quietly, “I’m really, really sorry for everything. I’m sorry I messed things up, I’m sorry I kept things from you, I’m sorry I gave your car away – I was so, so angry at you then.” “You should have told me when Pereli came,” I seethed. “I asked you, but you didn’t even attempt to answer me. Pereli told me, but I was too dense to understand what he meant." “I’m sorry, I’m sorry, I’m sorry,” he murmured, sadness and weariness written all over his face. “Can I ever make it up to you somehow?” “In your dreams,” I shot back. I tried to leave but he grabbed my arm. Having no patience for this kind of thing, I simply kicked him in the shin and when he let go, I marched back into the building. I went up to my room, slammed and locked the door then angrily flung myself face down on the bed. Not long afterward, after I’ve cooled down somewhat, the intercom crackled and I heard Henri’s welcomed voice. “Madame,” he was saying. “If it’s OK with you, could I come in and see you?” I thought it over. “Alright,” I finally softened. “I really needed to talk to you anyway. It’s good that you called. But why couldn’t you just knock?” “I thought it’d be wiser if I made an appointment with you first,” he replied before signing off. I went to unlock the door and pretty soon, Henri knocked and entered. We went to sit on the two-seater. “The police?” I inquired. “Oh, they’ve already left,” he told me simply. “Que’s gonna have to go to the station and do some verification and may probably attend the court proceedings, but that’d be later on.” “I see,” I remarked, fist under my chin, elbow resting on one knee. “He went to talk to you?” he asked hesitantly, one arm resting on the headrest behind my head. “He did,” I acknowledged. “He really cares about you, you know,” he said gently. “A little extreme at times, I must admit, but otherwise he’s pretty much devoted to you.” “Stop saying good things about him,” I brooded. “Whose side are you on, anyway?” “Both sides, actually,” he answered simply. “By the way, what do you want me to say to Que if he asks? Can I tell him everything you’ve told me?” “Sure,” I relented. “By all means. I don’t care. It’s not me who wants to keep secrets anyway.” I then sighed and put both fists under my chin as he stared at me thoughtfully. “What happened, Hen?” I murmured, painful sadness suddenly enveloping me. “What could possibly have made him hate me so that he had to get rid of the car just to spite me?” “OK, I’ll tell you everything I know from the start,” began Henri slowly. “First of all, no matter how angry you were with each other, he never hated you, not for one bit. Your marriage had been pretty, uh, rocky, as both of you are equally stone-headed and neither would be willing to give in first. It was after a quarrel, and after you went missing, that Pereli came looking for you, asking for money. If you must know, I think Que suspects Pereli had been an old flame of yours because you used to lavish all sorts of things on him for some reason which Que can’t figure out. He’d always been jealous of Pereli and after you went missing, he gave away your car, which was actually a present from him anyway. I guess he either didn’t want to be reminded of you then or just wanted to get back at you.” “Or both.” I stared at him, not knowing whether to believe his story or not, but realizing in the end that my best friend would never have lied to me. He might have kept certain things from me, but deep in my heart I knew the Bearer of Light would never ever lie. Then, remembering something, I slowly got up and went to the boxes I had taken from the storage room. Henri followed me, and I silently showed him my jewelry and photographs. “Yep, those were your wedding jewelry,” he admitted readily, fingering a simple platinum ring. “See how this matches with the one Que always has on? And that red Pereli is the one Que gave to Pereli.” I showed him the burnt picture, and again he confirmed my suspicion. “I wasn’t there myself but you’ve shown me this before. Yes, it’s a picture of your wedding, probably the only one left since you’ve burnt all the others. No, Que wasn’t the best man, he was the groom. The man dressed in white with his back toward us was Qit, and he was best man, not the groom, mind you. That person in the background? No, that’s not Skye. Can’t you see? It was you.” “When was this?” I asked, slumping, my heart constricting with pain. “When you were seventeen,” he said, and a lot of possibilities crossed my mind, but I pushed them away and chose not to delve in them. “Look,” I finally whispered after a moment of silence. “I’d like to be alone for a while. Hope you don’t mind.” “Sure,” he said, getting up to go. “I understand.” He grasped my hands and gave them a comforting squeeze before he left. “Just don’t worry too much, you hear? Things will turn out for the better, you’ll see.” I changed then went back and stared sadly at the photographs for a while. What happened? Was my life really a sad farce? Was that why I had lost my memory? Because it had been a convenient way to erase memories of the past that I didn’t want to remember? Could that be it? I lay there on the floor, stretched out like a rag doll and felt like one, too. It seemed like I had lost all my dignity and self-respect. I chided myself for being so dim, and kept being angry at myself for not catching on to the others much earlier. I felt my head start to throb and felt that I needed to breathe fresh air. So I opened the sliding door and walked out to the balcony. I glanced at Que’s room and was glad to note that it was dark. Next, I crept up to the balustrade and closed my eyes, sighing contentedly as my old friend the night wind blew a refreshing welcome at my face and greeted me by playfully ruffling my hair. I looked sadly at the emptiness and gloom beneath and wondered what would happen if I threw myself over the ledge. Would anyone miss me? Would anyone care? Would I be maimed for life? Or would I die? But then something broke my reverie. I heard voices trailing in the night air. Wondering whom they belonged to, I leaned over the balustrade and peered into the darkness below. I then made out the profiles of Henri, Qit and Que illuminated by the garden lights. I strained to listen and affirmed that the trio below was arguing over something. “You know I’m here for you, bro,” Qit was telling Que. Turning toward Henri, he asked, “What about her? Have you talked to her? How does she feel about all this?” Que tried to say something but Qit hushed him. “She’s cooled down somewhat,” declared Henri. “But the ironic thing is, she was actually thinking of going back to you before all this happened.” “She what?” Que asked furiously. “Why didn’t you tell me? Great! That’s just great! Now that she hates me, I can just forget about her ever coming back.” “Cool it, Que,” said his brother. “You didn’t know. So, Henri, what’s your verdict? What are the chances that she’s willing to forgive and forget?” “To be frank, it’s no easy feat,” replied Henri solemnly. “Even for her. Don’t tell me you can’t see, can’t realize, just how devastated she is to learn she’s not who she thought she was. Heck, if she’s the same person she used to be, I’d bet she would have thought herself as still single, and still untouched to boot. To learn that she was actually married to you, Que, without remembering or understanding why and having no choice to say otherwise, don’t you think it’s a bit too much even for anyone? She’s a bit upset with all of us generally, especially for keeping this a secret from her. But knowing her, knowing how fast she’s willing to cool down and see things in perspective, plus her tendency to blame everything on fate and accept it just to get on with her life, I happen to think the chances for you are actually quite good despite it all, Que.” The three of them talked quietly for some time. But then they raised their voices again and I couldn’t help but hear what they were saying. “Qit,” Que was saying. “I’m sorry … if everything’s out of whack. And I’m sorry if I made it uncomfortable for you to work with her.” I cocked my ears forward at this last sentence. “Let’s not delve on that anymore, shall we?” Qit was saying. “What’s past is past. I think you’ve apologized enough for tonight, to her, to me, and to everyone else. Really, I’m OK with it now. You belong together.” “Thanks for understanding,” Que’s voice was soft and I had to lean forward to hear what he was saying. “It used to hurt me so just to see her standing there, unaware of our relationship. But now that she knows, I find that it’s even more difficult, like it’s an uphill ride all the way.” “So what’s stopping you from starting anew?” Qit had asked. Que tried to answer but then Henri interjected. “Have you told her how you feel? Have you told her everything?” Henri had suddenly asked. “I don’t think so,” stated Que, a little angrily I thought. “I did catch her reading the news in the archives, but I don’t think she managed to grasp it,” Qit added. “Are you sure? Don’t you think she should be told?” Henri asked again. “It’s her life, she has the right to know.” “And what makes you an expert to tell me what to do?” Que asked, a dangerous timbre in his low voice. “This is between me and her, so you’d better not stick your neck where you don’t belong.” “I only meant to help,” Henri sounded a little subdued. “Did you happen to tell her anything, anything at all?” Henri hesitated, then replied, “She asked about some pictures and jewelry, of the car and of your wedding. I told her. She also asked about the time she got hitched to you, and I told her when, too.” “Yeah,” said Que sarcastically. “Thanks a lot. That’s just what you were hoping for anyway, right?” “What do you mean?” Henri naively asked. “Nothing,” Que said accusingly, “except the fact that she’s probably now wondering why the heck she got married so early. Then it’d only be some time until she gets hold of the truth. Then what happens? Of course she’s just gonna pack and leave. And nothing would make you happier than seeing her leaving me, huh?” “What?” Henri sounded as if he couldn’t believe his ears. Qit went between Henri and Que, trying to cool Que down. “You’d better watch what you say.” “Well, you’d better watch what you do,” Que said hotly, his brother’s restraining hand on his shoulder having no effect on him whatsoever. “You think I can’t see it? You’re always hanging around her like some faithful dog, always finding some excuse to go to her room, even when you don’t have to! You think you can hide your intentions behind that best-friend façade? Well, I got news for you, buster – I can see right through you.” Henri seemed to stare at the quivering Que for the longest time. “You’re hallucinating,” he finally said. “Hallucinating? Tell me if this is one,” Que suddenly roared and lunged for Henri before Qit could stop him. I saw Henri stagger back and fall back on the grass as Que’s fist slammed into his face. It was unbelievable, my worst nightmare come to life. Highly upset and anxious, I didn’t waste much time. I practically flew down the stairs, barefoot and clad only in my thin cotton pajamas. “What on earth do you think you’re doing?” I screamed at startled Que and pushed him aside in my haste to get to Henri. I went down on my knees and slowly helped him sit. Only then did I realize Qit was also by Henri’s side, reprimanding his emotionally unstable brother. I felt furious when I saw blood trickling down Henri’s face and realized the chances for it to swell soon was extremely high. Despite his embarrassment at having me there, he recognized the alarm and concern on my face and jokingly assured me that all his teeth were still intact. “Can’t you get it through your thick skull?” Qit meanwhile was shouting at Que. “You want to destroy everything all over again, is that it?” I shot an angry look at Que and saw him crumple to his knees, his shoulders slack and a blank look on his face. Ignoring him, I used the edge of my pajama top to gently wipe the blood off Henri’s torn lips as he winced. “Opportunity doesn’t knock twice, Que,” Qit was ranting on, then suddenly fixed his attention on me. “And you, stop babying Henri! Can’t you see I’ve already got him? Stop it; you’re only making it worse.” He pushed my hand aside and I stood up, a little hurt and unsure, not realizing that Qit was referring to the situation and not to Henri’s injury. “And you, why don’t you grow up for a change?”” Qit returned his attention on his brother as I stared at them, gave up, spun around on my heels and left them. I went up to my room and like usual for the past few days lied there on the bed thinking for a long time. Finally wearied sleep embraced me and I was thankful I could at least escape the gloom I felt during my waking hours. The next morning, I purposely got up early, got dressed and was out the door before breakfast. I had left message with Ms. Sandy that I was going off for breakfast and that I had brought my cell phone along should the others wish to communicate with me. What I neglected to inform her however was that the phone was purposely switched off and all calls would automatically be diverted to my voice message box. I took my yellow car, sad at the fact that I could have driven a sportier car if only Que hadn’t given it away like a piece of junk, and went to Kismet Kesuma. I drove around for a while, happy that the roads weren’t so busy for a change. My windows were down, letting the cool early morning breeze enter the car and lift my spirits up. After a while, I came upon a coffee shop which had just opened for business, parked in front and entered. There weren’t many customers that early in the morning. I had a breakfast of toasted bread and milk tea and took my own sweet time reading the newspaper the shop supplied for customers. After I saw that it was 8.30 a.m., I quickly left and headed for the national library. I felt compelled to return and finish reading the article Qit had stopped me from reading, especially after I had overheard him referring to the incident the previous night. Once inside, I straightaway asked the librarian to grant me access into the archives room. There, I searched and found the concerned piece of news, and again noted that it was dated eight years ago. I started reading Fighters’ Scandal: Government Keeping Mum anxiously. Was Qit being rude because he was so concerned with work? Or was he deliberately trying to stop me from reading something he didn’t want me to know? These thoughts chased through my mind as my eyes pored over the page. Little by little, the smile on my face vanished and I turned pallid. My hands perspired and trembled as I strove to understand what the reporter was trying to tell me. The piece of news also referred to previous articles relating to a particular sad incident involving two Fighters. Distraught, I began reading the concerned articles and had a hard time swallowing the facts. I felt very old and tired suddenly, as if the life had been sucked out of me. I slumped down in my seat, my face blank, and for some time I couldn’t do anything but keep my eyes fixed to a blind spot on the wall. Finally, I thought I had had enough. I stood up abruptly, making the chair fall. I felt giddy at the sudden motion and felt so sick I didn’t even bother straightening the chair up. Dazedly, I left the building, went to my car and slowly drove home. There, I began a desperate search for Que, who I had previously been trying hard to avoid. I finally found him, ironically enough in the ground floor library, talking to Qit. I stomped up to them and they stopped their conversation, looking at me expectantly. “Que,” I began forcefully, turning toward him with my back toward Qit. “I need to talk to you.” I guess he must have noted the dangerous current about me because he glanced at Qit and simply shrugged, saying, “Whatever it is, you can say it in front of my brother, too.” I couldn’t contain my bitterness anymore, and decided to choose that moment to let all my pent-up feelings and resentment explode. “Was that why you had to marry me?” I cried, startling both brothers. “Because I was pregnant?” Que turned ashen. Qit awkwardly excused himself and quickly left. Both Que and I didn’t even realize he was gone. I merely stood there glaring at Que, puffing slightly. Finally I saw his wide eyes soften. “You got it the other way around, actually,” he murmured gently. “It was the only way I could get you to marry me.” I stared at him, finding it hard to comprehend what he was saying. “But how could you?” I cried as I covered my eyes with my hands, shattered. “Why did you have to resort to some atrocious deed to get what you wanted?” He was quiet for a while, then I felt tentative hands reaching out to touch my shoulders. I angrily swiped them away. “I’m sorry. You can say I violated you, I don’t mind. I’m more than willing to take the blame.” Then, lightning-quick, he grabbed me by the hand. Angry, I squirmed and tried to free myself but he held on, pulling me toward the zebra-printed sofa on the other side and forcing me to sit down beside him. “I know you’re angry at me,” Que said in a low voice, looking into my glaring eyes and holding both my hands in a vice grip. “I know you might find the news disturbing. That’s what we wanted for you actually - to protect you, spare you the pain.” I cried harder and he pulled me closer, trying to comfort me. Furious, I banged his chest with my fists again and again and he just sat there quietly and endured it. In the end, my hands felt heavy and tired so I took a deep breath and let them drop on my lap, and my sobs became more subdued. “I can’t take back whatever I’ve said or done before,” he began earnestly, his voice breaking. “And I can’t undo my past mistake no matter how much I want to. Please understand. I’m only human.” “It was a mistake?” I lamented. “Is that what you’re trying to tell me?” He let go of my hands and lifted my chin with his fingers, forcing me to meet his eyes. I saw hurt there, and regret, but for me it was a little too late for that. “I – hate – you,” I told him through gritted teeth, shaking uncontrollably, then forcedly pushed him away. “It’ll be a cold day in hell when I finally talk to you again.” He toppled off the sofa while I quickly got up and stormed my way up to my room. 27) Que Talks about Marriage I kicked off my shoes and jumped onto bed. This was really turning into a bad habit for me, but then I couldn’t care less. I turned on the television, saw without seeing that it didn’t help numb the pain I felt inside and abruptly switched it off again. Finally, I just lay there rolled up in a ball, staring at a spot on the wall opposite. Not long afterward, Henri buzzed me. “I heard what happened,” he said softly. “So, can I make another appointment with you?” I blinked away the tears and sighed when I realized I sorely needed cheering up. “Sure, why not.” There was a pause, then he made his request. “But I hope you don’t mind coming over to my room for a change. I’m too tired and lazy to go to yours. Can you come?” “Maybe later then,” I told him, massaging my throbbing temples. “I’m really not in a good mood now.” “I can hear that in your voice,” he remarked. “But, please, Azure? It’s not like you often come to my room anyway.” “Oh, all right,” I finally relented, standing up. “Since you’re so insistent.” “Thank you,” I heard him say as I walked out of the room. Once he opened his door, I entered, then I gasped at his black and blue face but he shrugged and told me it was nothing. I then took in how tidy the room was and felt glad for once that housekeeping had got there before I did. But as he shut the door behind me, I turned around and suddenly realized we weren’t alone. Que walked awkwardly toward me and we stood there staring at each other warily. “I’m getting out of here,” I muttered as I made for the door. But Henri stopped me. “No, no, no, no,” he told me, shoving me in the back and making me sit on his bed. Then he coerced Que to sit next to me, though I made sure I moved some distance away. Henri meanwhile carried the chair from his study desk over and sat down in front of us. “OK,” Henri began. “He’s been telling me that you refuse to talk to him ever again, and due to this, I have agreed to act as a go-between.” “What is this?” I rolled my eyes. “We’re not children. I don’t need an intermediary.” “Ah,” said Henri wisely. “But he does.” “I don’t understand,” I blurted out all of a sudden. “Why are you siding with this guy? He’s the one who gave you a black eye in the first place.” I saw Que looking down at his feet from the corner of my eyes. Henri meanwhile was scowling and I saw I had hit a nerve. “Could we get back to you and him, please,” he said, a little pointedly. “The topic of this discussion today is the both of you, so let’s not focus on me, OK?” “OK,” I agreed. Then feeling weary, I stretched out and lied down on his bed. “Que wants you to know the whole truth,” Henri began. “Finally?” I said sarcastically. “Whatever made him decide at last?” “Hey,” Henri warned me. “We’re trying to hold a neutral discussion here. Please be civil.” “Why doesn’t he tell me himself if he has something to say?” I questioned. “He’s no puppet. He doesn’t need to have somebody talk on his behalf.” “But are you willing to listen?” Henri asked. “Well, since I’ve been tricked to come here, we might as well do it then,” I replied. “God damn it,” Henri cried, standing up. “What is it with you guys? I mean, here I am trying to help my two good friends, and you don’t even appreciate it. Can’t you just iron the creases out together or something? Do you even need me in the first place? I’m beginning to think not.” He began to walk purposefully toward the door. Alarmed, I jumped up and ran after him. “Hey, where are you going?” I asked, panic rising in my voice. “Out,” he said curtly. He shut the door before I could reach him and when I turned the knob, I realized he had locked the door from outside. “Hey,” I shouted as I pounded on the door. “This isn’t funny! Open it, Hen! Now!” “No way,” I heard him say through the wood. “And don’t bother with the door to the balcony, too; it’s been stuck for the longest time and I’ve been too busy to notify housekeeping. OK. I’m gonna sit out here now until you finally talk it over with him. He’s willing to be honest with you. The least you can do is meet him halfway. I’ll let you out after you’ve kissed and made up.” His words caused a tremor along my spine. I slowly turned and saw Que still perched on the edge of Henri’s bed, looking at me hopefully. “Can we talk?” he finally asked imploringly. I sighed and strode toward Henri’s chair. “Well, we might as well,” I replied reluctantly. “It’s not like I have a choice anyway.” I sat on the chair and tucked both feet under me. “Shoot away, then.” “Look,” he began hesitantly, moving slowly toward me until we were finally sitting opposite, so close that our knees almost brushed each other’s. “I’m serious when I said I want to be straight with you. No holds barred. You can ask me anything, but I just hope you can handle the truth.” “What is the truth, Que?” I asked him sadly. “To know that your life has been a sham?” “It’s not easy for me to tell you a past that I would rather forget,” he said with difficulty. “I just hope you’d listen.” “I’m listening, ain’t I?” I frowned at him. He gazed at me then looked down at the floor. “Before that,” he began timidly, “would you mind sitting properly? You’re distracting me.” I widened my eyes with realization and quickly lowered my feet back on the floor, bumping knees with him in the process. “Thank you,” he said kindly. “Now, where should I begin?” “Anywhere is fine with me,” I told him curtly. “Well then, how did you find out, if I may ask?” “I went back to the library this morning,” I told him. “I looked it up in the archives.” “Oh.” He was quiet for a while. “I’m sorry you had to learn it this way.” “Yeah, I know you are,” I remarked sarcastically. “So what do you know?” “Everything.” “But then that’s the paper version. You haven’t heard the whole story yet.” “So, by all means, enlighten me.” He took a deep breath and plunged in. “It’s not easy to start, and it’s not a very pretty story, but I’ll do my best anyway. If you must know, we had just turned seventeen then, and our year-end vacation had just begun. I guess I had always liked you, even from the moment I first laid eyes on you at the train station – though I didn’t realize it then, and besides, I was pretty shy and awkward at the time. I didn’t dare tell anybody how I felt, except to Qit. He sympathized with me and supported me, then I found out one day that he had asked you out and you had accepted. “I was crushed to know that my own brother had betrayed me,” his voice quaked slightly. “I envied his guts and hated his callousness. But I tried telling myself that I was happy for him, he was my brother after all, the only kin I had left in the entire universe. I kept reminding myself that only the best man would win, and in this case, the best man was evidently Qit. “I tried to be brave and strong, for my own dignity, but every time I see both of you together I couldn’t stop feeling deep down inside that this was wrong, that it was me you should have been with. “Then one day it happened. I heard from Penny that Qit had been meaning to ask you to go steady with him, but there had been a misunderstanding and you somehow ended up with your first big fight. You were so angry you actually tore into shreds the giant teddy bear he had won for you at the funfair. “Nothing could cool you down back then when you were fuming mad. You wanted to go back to town to drown your worries and I just happened to be there. You grabbed me by the hand and dragged me along to keep you company, though it’s not like I minded anyway. You took me to this joint of dubious reputation where we spent some time letting off steam by badmouthing Qit. “Then this sleazy character called Mantis came up to us. You claimed he was an acquaintance, not that I knew exactly what type of scoundrels you associated with back then. He wanted to show us some new stuff that he happened to lay his hands on, good stuff, he said, that would help us forget all the pain in the world. “I took one look at the milky substance he showed us and knew it had to be some sort of mind-altering drug. But then, you just didn’t seem to care. He asked for some money in exchange and I was shocked when you actually gave it to him. On retrospect, I guess I should’ve done the right thing by advising you not to, but back then I didn’t dare admonish you when you were in a rage. “Anyhow, you kept staring at the stuff, contemplating whether you actually had the guts to use it on yourself. I felt so sorry seeing you sit there dejectedly, wallowing in pain. I hated Qit for hurting you. In the end, you got up and went to the ladies, and I was the one staring at it, wondering whether what Mantis had said was true. I know now that it was downright stupid of me, but I really thought that the stuff could help, not just you, but me as well. On an impulse, I poured some into your drink and mine, and when you returned, you finished your drink in one gulp then prepared to go. Outside, you threw the stuff into a dustbin, and that was the last I remembered. “When I woke up, I had an incessant throbbing pain in the head and was stunned when I realized I was in a strange bed in a foreign room, and got the shock of my life when I turned around and found you sleeping beside me. I don’t know what came over me, I guess it was stupid of me, and something I’m not exactly proud of, but then I wasn’t thinking clearly. I panicked. I got dressed in a hurry and ran all the way back. “You told me later that you had woken up feeling some pain in your lower region. You saw some bloodstains on the bedcovers and thought at first your menses must’ve come. But when you realized it was a different kind of pain, plus the fact that you were obviously in a strange room in a cheap hotel somewhere, you began to dread the worst. “You realized you needed to be checked up, so you dazedly went to this gynecologist who happened to have a clinic nearby. He examined you and confirmed that your suspicion had been correct after all. You were stumped and in a fix, and didn’t know what else to do. The doctor inquired whether you knew who had violated you and you said yes, you had an idea on who this person was, then he convinced you to lodge a police report. “Trusting his adult advice, you went to the police station and lodged your report. Skye had been up all night worrying where you were and why you didn’t come home, and when you called her up and told her you were at the station she practically rushed there. Not long afterward, I was remanded and it wasn’t too long before the court proceedings started. “The people manning the hotel’s front desk identified me as the one who had brought you up to the room. I kept insisting I wasn’t aware of anything, that we had been under influence when we checked in. The police did find traces of some suspicious chemical compound in our urine samples, though they never could find the stuff you had thrown so carelessly into the bin that night. They couldn’t seem to find Mantis, either. “We were both examined by medical practitioners, and it was established that I hadn’t exactly forced myself upon you, since there was not enough physical evidence to show that you had fought off my advances. “And the funny thing was, they called a bellboy to testify, and he told everyone in court that it was evident to all that it was consensual, because we acted like lovebirds all the way up to our room. “I really had no memory of what actually transpired, and believe me, I was quite upset with myself for not being able to remember something so significant, not that I meant to hurt you or anything. By then, everyone hated me: Skye wouldn’t even look at me and I heard Qit swearing that I was no brother of his. All through it all, you always looked glum and lost in thought, and you let your lawyers do whatever they liked. “In the end, since only the bellboy could attest you had responded in a positive manner to my advances, plus the fact that the gynecologist had obtained biological proof that pinpointed toward me, it appeared like I was gonna be thrown into juvenile delinquent jail. “Then, suddenly, you did the unthinkable – after a discussion with the others, you decided not to take action against me. The case was dropped, so I was freed and went home to the mansion. It was pretty awkward at first, everybody ignored me, and acted as if I didn’t exist. It was even more awkward when I found out that you were pregnant. I should have suspected something like this when you asked the police to free me, despite Skye telling you not to. “It was highly sensationalized news. We could hardly walk about without reporters hounding us and bombarding us with questions. The whole country, no, the whole world was in uproar and wanted to know every detail that went on in the mansion. After all, such a thing had never happened before. I was almost kicked out of the Fighter program, but luckily the Country Leader intervened and despite our young age, strongly advised me to marry you, so that we could end the constant speculation of the nation as well as redeem myself in society’s eyes. “At first, I was scared. Man, it was a big responsibility to find yourself married when you’re only seventeen. I wasn’t even sure how you would take it. But I convinced myself this was the best way out of the predicament. Besides, I realized it was probably the only way I’d ever get you to be with me for life. “I remember the day when I decided to ask you. I had bought a simple diamond ring, the first one I saw on display in the first jewelry store I passed by. When I went home to look for you, I found you sitting in the swings. Penny and Skye were there, too, but they left when they saw me. Only you stayed behind. “I made up my mind to do it properly this time, so I got down on my knees and proposed to you with the ring. I don’t know why, but it felt so right when I did that, everything clicked into place, like it was the proper thing to do. But at first you didn’t say anything, you just stared at me and bit your lip like this, then you covered your face with your hands. “My first thought was that you were laughing at me but when I peered closer, I saw that you were crying. And when I saw you like that, I felt my heart break into splinters, and only then did I understand how much pain I had actually caused you. I was aghast, and I felt that the only thing left for me to do was marry you and liberate you from your grief. “I almost couldn’t believe my ears when you finally said yes. In a week’s time, we were married in a simple garden wedding. Those were the happiest days of my life. I was staying in another room at that time, but I moved all my things into the room next to yours and had the wall between us torn down. For a while we were blissfully happy, and little by little the others accepted me back into their ring. “But I never realized how hard it was to make a marriage work. It’s so much different than when you’re in a boyfriend-girlfriend relationship. Not that I had been in one prior to marriage, but I’ve heard a lot about it. Pretty soon, we were always quarrelling, and there were times when we refused to see each other for days at a stretch. By the time you were six months pregnant, we re-sealed the wall and stayed in separate rooms. When you were eight months along, we had a major fight. I then accepted an overseas assignment which would have taken me three weeks at most, and despite the others’ objection, you decided you wanted to go on a cruise, alone. “Upon recollection, I realized now that I shouldn’t have done that, shouldn’t have left you alone unattended. But I was so mad at you then, we were both thick-skulled and hot-tempered it was very difficult for us to get along well with each other actually. I don’t know why this was so, we used to get along fine before marriage. “You got into labor early, and you phoned me and asked me to come home, but I told you I still had some work left to do. I only learned later on that the ship ran into some trouble, and you actually had to give birth aboard it.” Here, Que’s eyes watered as he recalled the past. “You should have remembered them, they were so beautiful. A baby boy, and a baby girl. But you had some complications, and gave birth to stillborns – I promise to take you to the cemetery to visit Aqmel and Aqlin sometime soon. You had also lost a lot of blood then and I almost nearly lost you, too.” He looked at me imploringly, and I saw the hurt still in his eyes, a fresh wound that looked like it had only been caused yesterday. “You can’t imagine how much I regretted going away from you, not being there for you in your moment of need. I tried my best to make up for it, to be a better husband to you, but by then the damage had already been done. We separated not long after. You had purchased several houses all over, and often stayed here a day or two, then moved on to who knows where. “Back then you kept urging me to divorce you, but I just couldn’t find it in my heart to oblige. I was lucky that Melizian law didn’t allow a wife to divorce her husband without his prior consent. For despite our different ways, I was very much aware that I still loved you, and understood that it would have been a grave mistake if I were to let you go, because then there wouldn’t be any certainty you would ever come back to me. “It was then that you struck up a friendship with this funny guy from the Ministry of Defense. At first I didn’t mind you being close to Henri, at least not that much, since I was so busy with my work schedule to spend time with you anyway. But when you kept hanging out together almost every day, it really hurt me, you know. “I’d look out the balcony and see you playing basketball one-to-one. I’d go down to the dining room and see you giggling and whispering at each other about who knows what. I’d go into town and catch sight of both of you laughing as you strolled down the street. I kept asking myself, why couldn’t it be me? You already had me, why did you need to seek out another man’s company, even if you claimed it was just a platonic relationship? And when you pressured the government to accept him as a Fighter, I knew then just how much he meant to you, and I didn’t like it. “Back then, you had a strange affinity for weird characters. I almost died of a heart attack when Penny told me you were getting rather chummy with this so-called harmless freak who named himself after your Pereli. “And then one day, you just upped and disappeared. At first I was angry, this wasn’t the first time you had done this to me. So when Pereli came looking for you and hounding me for money, I simply gave away your car to shut him up and force him to leave. “But when a few weeks passed by, I started to worry. I began to search for you frantically for the longest time, never giving up the hope that someday you would come back to me. And one day it actually came. I heard news that you were found unconscious in a Mugamban desert with serious head injuries, and I rushed to the hospital to see you when they brought you in by helicopter from the airport. “I stayed by your side every single day while you were in your coma, talking to you, singing to you, reading to you your favorite books, and always making sure your room had a fresh supply of flowers every morning. When I got a call from Dr. Ryan telling me that you had finally woken up, all of us raced to the hospital, eager to see you. But once there, we were crushed to know you didn’t remember anything. “Skye warned me then not to breathe a word to you. But I wanted no part of it. I knew my wife when I saw her, and though the others doubted your identity, I did not. But when I saw how fragile and frail you looked, I guess my overprotective instinct kicked into overdrive. I felt like you needed to be shielded from the ugly truth, and realized Skye had been right. And that was why I couldn’t tell you anything, no matter how much I wanted to. “It wasn’t that difficult to keep it that way, especially with the others always hanging around and keeping watch on me, ready to swoop in at a moment’s notice should I step out of line. And that’s the absolute truth.” 28) Penny and Henri He gazed at me quietly, his hands twitching as he awaited my verdict. I thought he expected me to hold his hand or something, but I didn’t move. I just couldn’t. I felt that he, as my husband, should have shown more guts, be brave enough to face the consequences and stand up to the other Fighters. Darn it, this was supposed to be our own nuclear family – why the heck did people have to meddle with our private affairs anyway? I believed I would have been far more forgiving had he been more straightforward sooner. In the end, I just stood up as he raised his beseeching eyes at me. “I’m sorry,” I finally muttered. “I think I have to go lie down and think first.” I went to the door and rapped at it before he could stand up and stop me. “Open up, Hen. We’ve talked.” Henri unlocked the door and opened it, and I stepped out and headed toward my bedroom without a backward glance. I didn’t feel like being disturbed by anybody. Skye called me up, but I refused to take her call. Somebody knocked on my bedroom door a few times, but I chose to ignore it. In the end, as a last resort to exorcise the strong jumbled feelings I felt inside, I went to the stable to get Midnight and rode him furiously around the grounds for some time. Finally, when I thought I had let off enough steam, I felt much better. So I led Midnight back to the stables and found Penny whistling while braiding her horse. “Oh, hi,” she greeted me brightly. “Fancy seeing you here. You look so, I don’t know, wild and unkempt. Did something make you mad?” I felt relieved when I realized she didn’t know what had transpired today. And seeing her in such good moods reminded me about something which had bothered me for some time now. So, after I had led Midnight into his stall, I went to Penny and we slowly walked out of the logged building together. “You know,” I began. “I meant to tell you sooner, but did you realize you were downright rude to your date at the ball when you stood him up?” Penny stopped in her tracks and whirled around. “Oho, now you’ve got something against me, don’t you?” she accused. I decided to ignore her charge and ask another one, “Do you have any inkling who he was?” She stared at me and realized what I was getting at. She went to sit on a huge tree stump and invited me to do the same. “So this is about him, huh?” she asked while looking straight in front of her. “I had my suspicions, and I’ve been expecting you to confront me and confirm the worst, and now you have.” I sat down beside her. “Do you realize you’d hurt him?” She finally looked at me and said pointedly, “I believe in everyone for himself. If you see something that you want, then by all means, go and get it.” I knew she was referring to her and Mr. Hunky Dream Guy. “Yes,” I whispered back. “That was what he was trying to do, too.” “He was too slow,” Penny argued. “He only wanted to wait until the time was right,” I told her patiently. She was silent for a while, contemplating. Then she shrugged. “So what? It doesn’t really mean anything anyway.” “Do you know how he feels about you?” I asked again. “He was willing to swallow his pride and take a risk, besides spending a lot of his hard-earned money, just to be closer to you.” “No, he didn’t,” Penny replied and when she looked at me I thought I saw anger and pity in her eyes. “I guess you’re the only one who can’t see what everybody else can: that it’s impossible for him to care for me. He only cares for you.” I stared at her. “Are we referring to the same person here?” I finally found the tongue to ask. She nodded. “Not unless you have another second shadow.” I shook my head adamantly. “It’s not like that at all. Why does everybody keep saying I’m after their men? First it was with Skye and Dark, then Lawles and Que, now you, too?” “Because it’s the truth,” she said exasperatedly. I glared at her. “And he’s no shadow either.” She only sighed. “That’s what you say.” “He really cares for you, Penny,” I tried again. “Why are you blind to it?” She moaned and bitterly launched into another one of her rambling stories. “It all comes back to you, doesn’t it? I guess you’ve always had things easy for you – your dark charm especially. “When you first came, you were such a quiet mouse, and weird, too. I knew you looked like Skye, but everyone’s got to admit that she’s so much prettier than you. You used to keep to yourself and be anti-social, too, and it always was a wonder why guys kept falling for you. “At first I just couldn’t stand it. Whenever Skye, you and I would go somewhere, at first all the boys’ attention will be riveted on Skye. But once they realize, or imagine, she’s way out of their league, they’d shift their attention to me. But only for a short while. Because once I open my mouth to speak, they quickly lose interest and turn to you and become smitten. “I mean, what is it exactly that guys see in you? You’re not the brightest, or the most beautiful, or the most talented. You’re clumsy, you’re uninteresting, and your social skills – even today – is still underdeveloped, and yet men still find you attractive? It doesn’t make sense at all! “And now you’re telling me that your best friend, who happens to be male, likes me? Hah! Who’d believe that? I don’t, that’s for sure. I know you’re not exactly the most perceptive person on earth – for all I know, you need glasses to improve your sight, but then that’s another story. But, heck, we can all see it even if you cannot; it’s just that we don’t bother telling you because there’s just no point to it. “The way he so much as look at you. He grovels at your feet, wags his tail when you tell him you’re pleased with him, always doting on you and always at your beck and call.” “Henri’s not like that,” I frowned at her, remembering Que had said similar things to Henri before he punched him. “Maybe not to you,” sighed Penny resignedly. “But to us, he is.” “But you should hear how he talks about you instead,” I emphasized. I knew Penny loved being the subject of conversation, so I made full use of this advantage. “You’re always his favorite thing to talk about. I know he sometimes teased you, but I guess that was just a subconscious way on his part to give you the message that he likes you. In fact, he told me that you were an amazing woman with amazing beauty and amazing grace. He said he valued your intelligence, capabilities, as well as your open and honest ways.” She stared at me disbelievingly. “Stop pulling my leg.” I tried to appear hurt. “I’m not.” She bit her lower lip and kept silent. I knew she was assessing what I had just said. “Besides,” I continued, ”being the shy person he is, of course he’s careful not to reveal too many signs at once. He tried to ignore you, and the best way to achieve this was to pay more attention to me. I’m sorry if the plan backfired, but that’s just the way he is. You say he doesn’t look at you, doesn’t talk about you, doesn’t behave the way a man attracted to you would behave, especially when I’m around? Well, maybe you should wonder instead what he does when you’re not around, or at least when you’re not looking, and when he feels most comfortable and confident. “I know he’s my best friend, and I’d be lying if I told you I’m not fond of him. But I know what he wants, and as his best buddy, it hurts me to see him think he’s a failure, to see him giving up just because he couldn’t get the thing he wanted the first time around. “I can’t say I know your type, Penny. And I have to admit, Mr. Hunky Dream Guy or whatever his name is, is pretty nice to look at. But have you asked how long your relationship’s gonna last before you, or him, finally get tired of each other and break up? Or do you really believe this relationship will be everlasting? Maybe you’re just having fun right now, but as a woman talking to another, I know deep in your heart you want a worthwhile relationship, one you can be secure with and hold on to for a long time. “I’m not trying to promote my friend, but I’d still like you to be aware of his worth, if you hadn’t realized it yet. He may not have a lot to offer in terms of looks, but I happen to think that his heart more than makes up for this small drawback. “All I know is that he’ll be good for you, Penny. My only wish is for you to try to get to know him a little better, see for yourself whether he’s really worth your while or not. And that, once you decide to return his feelings, I just hope I haven’t made a mistake by thinking you’d be good to him, too.” Penny pondered over this while looking in my eyes for the longest time. “I need time to think,” she finally said. I nodded and got up, smiling. “I know you’d say that,” I remarked as I patted her shoulder and prepared to go. “Take all the time you need. Just promise me you’ll be true to yourself and assess everything fairly. I happen to think he’s got what it takes to make you happy, or any other girl for that matter actually. You’re both my friends, even though I hate your big mouth sometimes.” I then waved and walked away as she stared at my back. I thought Henri deserved to know about my conversation with Penny so I went up to his room. But before I could knock, the door opened and Que’s startled face greeted me. Caught by surprise myself, I clutched at my fast-beating heart. “Gosh, you scared me,” I wheezed. “We’ve got to stop meeting this way.” He stepped into the corridor where I stood and quietly closed the door behind him. I gave him a wary look. “Is Hen in?” I asked. I didn’t want to be too civil with him, so I decided to choose my words and use them sparingly. “He’s taking a shower right now,” answered Que. I was stumped. “What were you doing while he was showering?” I frowned, then I realized how I had put it. Que must have thought I was accusing him of something weird. He stared at me before answering, “I wasn’t doing anything with him, to him or about him while he was showering. He’d just entered the bathroom some moments ago. That’s why I’m leaving.” “Oh.” I spun around and began to walk toward my room. But he called out and went to block my way before I could reach the door. “Azure,” he said with those big eyes of his. “Are you still angry at me?” “I don’t know,” I answered carefully. “Am I supposed to?” He tried to take my hand but I quickly moved it away from him. “Don’t touch me,” I told him sharply. I didn’t want to be any closer to him than necessary, at least not until I’ve sorted out my thoughts and feelings in good working order first. “All right,” he said resignedly, and I was surprised he took it easily. “But do you want to go down with me? Dinner will be ready soon.” I shook my head. “That’s OK. I’m not hungry.” He sighed. “Then would you mind going for a walk with me for a while? Please?” I was about to decline the invitation when I realized he could also follow me into my room and refuse to leave. Being alone in a room with him was something I wasn’t ready for and I decided that this would have been a worse alternative. So I nodded stupidly and slowly walked down the stairs and went out to the lake at the back with him, always keeping my distance from him with every step I took. I was prepared to run should he so much as lay a finger on me. Luckily he behaved perfectly. He was quiet and subdued most of the time, and I knew he had a lot of things on his mind, too. There was a big jutting boulder near the edge of the lake and he invited me to come sit beside him. I did just that, though I made sure we were far enough apart not to touch each other. We were quiet for a while, then he picked some pebbles and began throwing them into the pond. It was getting dark by then, and the garden lights were being automatically switched on. With it I could see the contours of Que’s set jaw as he contemplated. “You see those ripples?” he suddenly whispered, gesturing toward the skipping pebbles he had thrown. I followed his index finger and nodded at the ripples. “See what caused it? It was only a small pebble, only this big, but the ripples it made was far wider than the pebble ever was.” “What’s your point?” I asked him quietly after he lapsed into silence. “Nothing.” He smiled weakly and turned to look at me. “It’s just that I was thinking, we’re not unlike that pebble. Ignorant and simple-minded, we barge through events in our lives without giving much thought. But the consequences of our actions can be felt far and wide, way beyond what we could ever hope to anticipate.” “Oh.” I realized he was talking about us, about our past mistakes specifically. I remained thoughtful for a while, then I decided it wouldn’t hurt to know the truth. “Que,” I began softly, “I know you claimed you … cared for me, but I just want to know whether … whether … “ “Whether you loved me in return?” he read my mind and finished my sentence for me. I thought his voice sounded resigned, and a little hurt. So I stared down at my feet and nodded slowly. “I really have no memory of … our relationship, at all,” I explained in a feeble voice. “But I want to know … so that I can understand myself better.” He didn’t answer straight away but just stared off into the distance. Finally, he sought confirmation from me, “Do you want to know the truth?” I nodded quietly and he heaved a deep sigh. “It would have been easier for me to lie,” he admitted, “because you wouldn’t have known any better, and by doing that I could at least be one step closer to have you come back to me.” He kept silent for a while, chin resting atop one knee, thinking and contemplating about who knows what, and I waited patiently for him to continue. It had grown very dark at this time, and all the birds had flown home to their nests a long time ago. But the many traditional-styled garden lamps all around the lake shaped quivering reflection on the calm lake surface and helped light the area well enough for us to see each other. “I really don’t know,” he finally confessed in a dull voice. “I really wanted you to, but never in our eight years of marriage did you even once tell me that you loved me. I had always hoped you would, and I sorely believed I would get to hear it some day if I was only patient enough to wait for it. I didn’t mind waiting as long as the day would come, but it never did. “It used to drive me up the wall sometimes. There I was, desperately needing you, but you just didn’t seem to care. Sometimes I think it was because you blamed me for forcing you into an early marriage, one that you were hardly prepared for, and sometimes I think it was because of the reason of the marriage itself – due to circumstances and not based on love.” “But,” I began slowly, “I’ve always thought that two people who’ve been together for some time could, you know, eventually harbor feelings for one another.” He shook his head slowly. “Not when we were living separately. Not when we seldom spend enough time together. Guess there was just no space for the feelings to grow.” “But I can’t believe it – I mean, why would I stay married to you all these years if I – if I …” my voice trailed off as I realized what it was I had just said. “If you never loved me?” he asked softly. Then he stared off to space and for a while I was thankful I could hide my blush under cover of darkness. “I don’t know,” he began slowly. “It could have been a number of reasons: because you had become too comfortable with our sorry façade of a marriage, because our separation meant that it was OK for you to meet other men anyway, because … " his voice broke and we both stayed silent for a while. Finally, when he had better control over his emotions, he continued, “Besides, you did ask me to divorce you, so many times that I lost count. Sometimes it seemed like I was the only one that was desperately trying to hold the marriage together. If I had relented I doubt we’d still be married now.” I looked at him curiously and he turned his face away self-consciously. For some reason I felt sorry for this boyish-looking man, who firmly believed he was married to one who was too stubborn to fall in love with him. I swung my legs against the rock and looked up when he pointed toward something in the night sky. “Look,” he told me. “It’s a falling star.” “Really? Where?” I squinted as I tried to figure out which one. If this was meant to be a diversion from our heavy-subject conversation, it worked. I realized suddenly I had never seen a falling star, though there was always the possibility that I had simply forgotten. Finally, I saw it and shrieked excitedly, “Oh, there, there it is! I can see it!” We followed the sight with our eyes till it disappeared from view. I sighed, grateful that I could now finally attest to seeing a falling star, turned to look at Que and almost fell off the boulder when I suddenly realized how close we were. He was right beside me, so close that I could almost feel the warmth of his breath, and when he turned to return my gaze, I couldn’t help feeling as if I had something stuck down my throat. I tried to tear my eyes away but I couldn’t, I was frozen solid. I saw how the pain in his eyes dissipate and the expression reflected there slowly soften. I had the feeling that he was struggling with a million things he meant to tell me, and I held my breath and gulped in nervous anticipation. “Look out,” he suddenly called out as I felt myself tilting and slipping off the boulder. He grabbed my arm and stopped me from falling headfirst into the cold lake waters. I shivered slightly, and he suddenly wrapped his arms around me. It was warm and comforting at first, and I just let it be, until I felt something warm trickling down my neck. Startled, I lifted my face and caught sight of his red-brimmed eyes. 29) The Betrayal I stared at him dumbly as he embarrassedly rubbed his eyes. I couldn’t make up my mind what to do with a guy who could actually be moved enough to cry in front of me. It defied logic that a Fighter could be this sentimental. “Penny for your thoughts,” he whispered beseechingly and I realized he was uncomfortable at having me stare at him for so long. “It’s just that … ” I struggled to put words to whatever I felt at the moment, but I just couldn’t utter them. He didn’t make it any easier for me when he drew me nearer and started kissing my earlobe. “Stop it,” I implored and he stopped, though only for a while. “But why?” he asked huskily, tracing my lips with a finger. “I love you, Azure.” Confused and unsure, I slowly pushed him away and detached myself. “I’m sorry,” I explained to him earnestly. “But I can’t. I’m just not ready for any of this. Not just yet.” Then I started climbing down from the boulder. He called out to me to wait, that we should both go in for dinner but I told him no, I had things to do. I ran away before he could clamber down after me. I was overcome by a sudden urge to escape, to run away as far as I could from this mansion that was slowly but surely turning into a hell-hole for me. I hurried to the garage to get my car and drove off into the night, not exactly sure where I was headed to, just knowing that a breath of fresh air was a sure-fire way to help clear my muddled mind. I drove around for an hour before deciding to stop at a sidewalk café. I felt I needed something strong so I ordered a cup of espresso, then a glass of frappuccino, crunching the ground coffee beans comfortingly in my mouth. “You’re caffeine-intolerant,” a male voice reminded me. I looked up with bleary eyes as Dark grabbed a seat and sat in front of me. He smiled enchantingly and his dark-encircled eyes twinkled when he said, “You shouldn’t drink caffeine. You should know that by now.” A waiter asked him for his order, and he asked for a cappuccino. “I am feeling a little tipsy now,” I admitted. Which was true, otherwise I wouldn’t have stayed there in my seat talking to him. “Is something the matter?” he asked concernedly. “You look awful.” “I do feel awful, actually.” I don’t know why, perhaps I needed to unburden my heart out to a sympathetic listener, perhaps the caffeine had loosened my tongue and made me careless about guarding my real thoughts from others, but I began to tell him about all that happened with Que. I felt much better after that, and Dark turned out to be unexpectedly understanding and supportive, and I felt the risk I took in trusting him just this once was well worth it. “So how do you feel about him now?” he gently prodded, resting his chin atop his hands on the tabletop. His drink came then but he ignored it and just let it sit there in front of him. I thought it over, then sighed resignedly and confessed, “God, you can’t imagine how drawn I am to him.” Like a moth to a flame, I couldn’t help thinking. I tried grappling with a myriad of emotions as a part of me suddenly realized how much I wanted to be with Que. He was quiet for a while, then asked me the million-dollar question, “Do you love him?” “I don’t know,” I replied unhappily, hanging my head and covering it with both hands. “I don’t remember a single thing when it comes down to it.” “Forget the past. How about now?” he queried. “I’m not sure,” I told him truthfully. “Maybe.” “Does the maybe have a possibility of blowing up to a favorable yes?” he inquired. I stared in surprise at the logic behind his question but decided to ignore it. “It’s just that,” I instead paused, looking for the appropriate vocabulary to use, “something like a brake, like a red traffic light, always stops me whenever I think I’m getting uncomfortably closer to him. It’s almost like there’s a fence around my heart, and it won’t let me go free. For some reason.” “And you think that’s your subconscious trying to warn you that something’s wrong somewhere?” he asked with no hint of surprise in his voice. I blinked at his insightful perception and replied, “Exactly.” As the caffeine’s effect began to kick in, I started to fidget and let out a nervous high-pitched laugh. “Oops, sorry,” I apologized sheepishly as I covered my mouth, but the laugh came out anyway. “Can’t help myself.” He didn’t say a thing, taking his cup up to his lips and draining the liquid in one gulp instead. I tried to grab my glass and do the same, but my hands fumbled and shook uncontrollably and I just gave up on it. He raised his eyebrows as he saw this, and left some change on the table to cover the check. “Let’s go see Que and talk this over, what do you say?” he suggested as he went to my side. “Come with me, you can’t drive in this state.” I allowed him to grab my elbows and help me up. My head began to spin and I felt that I was walking on air with feet made of cotton. I let him guide me out of the café and sat down on the passenger seat of his car when he opened the door for me. We drove for a while with me chattering non-stop and him nodding away to every full stop in my conversation before I realized something was wrong. “Hey, this isn’t the way back to the mansion,” I pointed out. He stopped by the deserted roadside and rested his arm on top of my headrest. “No, it’s not,” he agreed, a strange look crossing his face. I realized we had passed by the last house almost ten minutes ago and there was nothing there around us except bushes and trees. “What are you doing?” I foolishly asked as he rested the other hand on my shoulder, gripping it hard when I tried to back away. “Shut up,” he hissed as he leaned toward me, pressing me down against my seat. I tried to say something and shake him off but he overpowered me, nibbling at my lower lip and biting it hard till it bled. I could taste the blood as it mixed with the saliva in my mouth. I stared into his cold dark eyes and wondered why I had ever found him attractive in the first place. Even my own husband never attempted to kiss me on the lips, much less force himself upon me. “You’re married,” I managed to gasp when he pulled his mouth away and leered at me. “So are you,” he replied unconcernedly and bit me on the neck. I winced in pain when I decided to tear my neck away from his teeth before he could puncture it as he did my lip. “But why?” I cried out to him, panic rising in my voice and tears blurring my eyes as I flailed my fists feebly against him in a bid to fight him off. “I trusted you!” He merely laughed sneeringly and kissed me more aggressively. “You really don’t remember, do you?” he stopped and toyed with my hair, then painfully yanked it, whispering and letting me feel his hot breath against my ear. “My poor, poor Azure.” He really was turning out to be a bit of a biter, nuzzling at my throat before biting it again. “You were such a bitch back then, and needed to be taught a lesson. I asked you to marry me, but no, you wouldn’t want me. I had to marry Skye instead just to gain entry into the mansion and get closer to you.” “You’re sick,” I yelled at him as I tried to claw and kick him away. His breath became more ragged as his eyes went south. That was it for me. With a sudden desperate burst of strength, I pushed him off me, opened the door and stumbled out. I ran into the bushes, but he soon caught up with me and pounced on me. We both hit the sands and he quickly sat astride me and forcibly and painfully bent my hands back so I wouldn’t fight. That really made me see red and in a desperate measure, I used my feet to kick some sand into his eyes. He bellowed in pain and paused to rub the sand out of his eyes, and I took the opportunity to push him off me and ran deeper into the forest. I jumped into thick underbrush and stayed there, silently trembling like a leaf. Very soon I heard the sound of scampering feet as Dark ran past to search for me. I was thankful that there wasn’t a lamppost nearby to light the area and expose me in my hiding place. I prayed hard that he wouldn’t find me. I heard Dark curse under his breath as he passed by my bush for the final time. I tried not to breathe too loudly and stayed there for what seemed like hours, even after I’ve heard the burst of Dark’s engine as he sped away, no doubt continuing to hunt for me in his car. After all was quiet around me, I cautiously stepped out of the underbrush and peered around in the darkness. I didn’t know which direction was which; I only knew I had to run away before Dark came back and found me. I half-ran, half-stumbled, brushing against cruel thorny branches, and went deeper into the forest. After some time, by pure luck I emerged from the forest and reached the road on the other side. I was still fearful and hid in the shadows behind a tree, a lone lamppost giving off the only light around as I shakily reached for the cell phone, luckily strapped like a necklace around my neck. I pressed 1 and the phone automatically dialed the first number saved in my sim card. “Azure!” I heard Skye greet me as her glad face appeared on the display panel on the phone. But her face changed when she saw me. “Is that Azure?” I heard Que’s comfortingly familiar voice, full of concern, ask and his face appeared above Skye’s shoulder. I saw him blanch as he saw what Skye must have seen. Then his face turned purple as he seethed, “Who did that to you? And where are you? Just stay there – I’ll come get you.” I couldn’t articulate, just looked at them beseechingly while tears slid down my face. I ironically realized how useful it must have been then to have a traceable chip inside you. When I finally found my voice, I told them shakily, “I don’t know where I am. Please get me. I’m scared.” “Tell us where you are,” instructed Skye. But before I could answer, I heard the sound of a car coming up the road and smiled gratefully up to the heavens. “It’s OK,” I told them as I walked slowly toward the road, meaning to hitch a hike. I felt safe knowing that both Skye and Que were with me though not exactly in the physical. “There’s a car coming and I – “ the words were left unspoken as the headlights bathed me in strong light and I blinked in front of Dark’s stalled car. The phone dropped from my slack hand as I swung around and ran for dear life. But he caught up with me easily and tackled me as we both tumbled down to the ground. I could hear his breathing grow heavier as he brutally hit me repeatedly, his eyes gleaming vehemently. He jerked at the top of my blouse and I knew beyond all doubt that if I didn’t escape then, I would never escape at all. “No,” I screamed at him as he struggled to pin my writhing body down. “Get off me!” A wild rage overtook me and I somehow managed to twist around and stand up. He lunged for me but my leg came up in forgotten reflex and I kneed him in the groin. He moaned, doubled over then covered the painful area with his hands and I took the chance to flee. I ran to the road just as another car came around the bend. I saw the dark shape of Dark limping out of the forest and frantically hailed the car down. When it stopped, I didn’t think twice about jumping into the backseat and urging the driver to drive away – fast. As the car sped off, the man and woman in front turned to look at me quizzically. As I breathed less laboriously and took in my surroundings, I realized I was huddled next to a small boy and a girl, both looking up at me with big puzzled eyes. I felt safe somehow knowing I was in some family’s car and started to sob uncontrollably. The two children, not really understanding what was happening but moved by my tears, howled along with me. “Look,” the man in front said and I realized he had taken in my appearance and put two and two together. “I don’t know what happened back there, but we’re taking you to the police. It’ll be safer for you there.” “Please, no,” I don’t know why I said that, except that I didn’t feel up to it to meet my problem headlong and wanted above all else to flee completely. “I – I don’t want to trouble you more than I have.” As his car approached some shops, I asked him to drop me there. He slowed down albeit hesitantly and I thanked him and his wife. I insisted I’d be OK, went out and slammed the door behind me, waving to the kids at the back as they slowly drove away. I stumbled blindly across the pavement and leaned against the wall some distance away. Fresh tears slid down my cheeks and I wondered why I was constantly plagued by bad luck. While I pondered over my next course of action, people stared at me and I self-consciously and shiveringly pulled my torn blouse closer to me. I tried asking myself whether I wanted to go back to the mansion but the idea of seeing Dark there frightened me immensely. I didn’t want to face Que, too. I knew I wasn’t ready to accept Que back in my life, not until I understood myself better and find out for sure where he stood in my life, and this answer hit me from out of the blue. I came to a decision, composed myself the best that I could and checked my pockets. I was very glad to see I still had my small wallet zipped up in my jeans pocket and that it didn’t drop during my scuffle with Dark. I went up to a waiting taxi, ignored the cab driver’s curious glance and asked him to send me to the Rkuyu Airport. Once I arrived there less than an hour later, I hurried to a still-open gift shop and bought a white I Love Melize T-shirt, a scarf and a pair of sunglasses. At the ladies’, I stared at my reflection in the mirror, taking in my smudged and swollen face, gashed arms, torn clothes and entangled hair. I inspected my torn lip as well as the teeth marks on my neck then wondered what went through the mind of Skye, Que, .the family in the car, the passersby and the taxi driver when they saw them. I realized it wasn’t important, shrugged, carefully washed the blood off my face with tap water, changed out of the ripped blouse, tied the scarf around my head and put on the sunglasses to avoid recognition. I used a false ID to book the first flight to Limbawe, the capital city of the Republic of Mugamba. Luckily no one recognized me. I wasn’t exactly keen for the others to find me so soon. 30) Finding Some Answers in Mugamba (sorry, still incomplete!) There was no real reason for the destination actually. It’s just that I was always consumed by a burning desire to really understand myself. I realized I didn’t know what to do with Dark, the beloved husband of my ‘twin’, and I also didn’t know what to make of my feelings for Que, my own husband. I wasn’t even sure whether I liked him or not, just that the emotion I felt made me feel uneasy and this disconcerted me. I had no better idea than to start with the place where I had been found, and believed ardently that many still-unanswered questions would be explained soon. During the flight, I managed to preoccupy my mind by recounting the meeting with the old man in my dreams, still obsessed with the notion that the truth was waiting for me in Mugamba, that I only had to seek it out. I also remembered Henri’s advice for me to seek my past, and knew that he would have agreed with my decision. My stomach growled and I tucked into my dinner and later on my breakfast with relish during the eight-hour flight. Once we touched down at the King Verde Airport in Limbawe, I went into a store, hastily grabbed some clothes off the rack and paid cash, then got a limousine to take me to a good hotel. The weather there was dry and hot, it made my lips parch and crack. After gulping down half a bottle of mineral water I found in the refrigerator, I succumbed to a deep non-judgmental sleep. When I woke up, it was already afternoon. I knew I didn’t have much time before the others missed me and started a search party. I wasn’t even sure where to start, but thought going to the national library to seek out news articles in the archives with anything related to me might be a good idea. But after several hours of digging in the past, I had to give up my efforts when I failed to come across any mention of my name or the Fighters for the last year or so. I thought enough was enough, and wanted nothing more than to wet my dry lips with several glasses of ice-cold beverage. I exited the Mugamban National Library and went across the street to enter an air-conditioned coffee shop. I wasn’t keen on repeating the Dark episode, especially on foreign soil, so I ordered iced weak tea for starters and a chocolatey nutty donut. After that I had a strawberry milkshake, and only then did I feel slightly better. I began to ponder over my next course of action. From the corner of my eyes I made out two locals sitting at the table at one end of the joint. They seemed to be eyeing me and their discreet way at doing so made me suspicious. I took my own sweet time, sipping slowly at my thick frothy milkshake, quietly watching the men watching me. Finally, I slowly stood up and paid at the counter. I stepped out of the shop and began strolling down the street, whistling nonchalantly. As I expected, I heard footsteps approaching from behind as the two followed me. I wondered whether they were spying on behalf of the other Fighters but decided it was highly unlikely for them to locate me so fast. I quickened my steps and heard the scuffle of feet behind me do the same. All of a sudden, I broke into a run and went into an alley flanked on both sides by tall apartment blocks. There, I quickly clambered up the emergency staircase and stayed quietly on the first landing. Below me, I saw the two beefy men from the coffee shop dash into the alley and stop when they saw I was nowhere to be found. I squatted and peered down through the space between the metal bars of the platform beneath my heels, letting them search for me. Then I decided enough was enough, and slid off the platform to land on my feet in front of them. “Were you looking for me?” I asked calmly. Somehow I felt somewhat fearless now – or was it careless? – and more confident of my own strength and dignity than I ever was before Dark attacked me. As the two big men walked up menacingly toward me, for some reason this didn’t frighten me. I experienced a sense of comforting protection wash over me, trusting my faith on my instinct, destiny and luck. Despite all this, it still surprised me when the duo halted a few steps before me, looked at each other, then grinned at me. “We’ve been waiting for you,” declared the taller man, head scratching his turban. All of a sudden, we heard the siren of police approaching from the street outside. A look of alarm flitted across his face and he quickly grabbed my hand. He began to run down the alley, forcing me to do the same. I looked over my shoulder and saw his shorter chubby companion in hot pursuit, panting. It was a blind alley, but they asked me to follow them. I wasn’t exactly sure why, but I complied willingly, climbing over the wire fence after them, jumping down and landing on my feet near the street on the other end of the alley. We raced toward a waiting black car parked opposite the street and when the tall one opened the back passenger door and gestured for me to enter, I did just that. Only after shutting the door did I suddenly question the wisdom of my action. The tall one slid into the driver’s seat in front, his plump companion filling the seat beside him. The former started the ignition, shifted to first gear and floored the accelerator. We raced down the street and the driver didn’t decrease his speed until we entered a small private lane and found ourselves in a forest. Thoughts of my escapade from Dark in somewhat similar surroundings made me shudder slightly but I realized the sun shone very brightly here and the spruce funny-shaped trees were different from the prickly bushes I had to hide in when in Melize. Besides, these teddy-like duo, despite their initial sinister appearance, seemed warm as the golden sun and I couldn’t help but get the impression that I could trust these people and that they’d do their very best to keep me safe from harm. “And what did you say your names were?” I prompted, resting one elbow on the backrest of each front seat. “C’mon, don’t joke with us,” warned the tall one. “Why should I be joking?” I asked back. “Tell me your names.” “We’re Rayzek and Harkin. Don’t you remember us?” he glanced at the rear-view mirror and smiled at my reflection. The sweet slow smile transformed his menacing face into a friendlier one. I took a second to regain my composure. “Am I supposed to?” The duo in front exchanged worried glances then Harkin the shortie said, “I guess she’s still suffering from head trauma.” Rayzek nodded in agreement at this remark. “How did everything turn out?” Rayzek then inquired. “They sent you home safely, didn’t they?” "What do you know about this?” I asked as suspicion reared its head. “Yup,” nodded Harkin, smiling. “She lost her memory all right.” He turned to look at me and smiled. “Just to refresh your memory, we were the ones who put you by the roadside outside Limawe in the first place.” “That was you?” I cried out in disbelief. “But why?” Harkin hesitated before answering, “I think you’d better hear that from the Boss’s mouth.” Pretty soon we came upon a clearing in the forest and Rayzek parked outside a ramshackle building overgrown with creepers. He asked me to follow them in while Harkin pulled aside some vines to reveal a wooden door hidden underneath. He knocked three times and when it was opened from inside, he stepped in. I followed suit and saw that we were in a dingy dark cramped room. The broken-paned windows had been boarded up and weak sunlight streamed into the room through the spaces between the nailed boards. Leaves and twigs were strewn all over the dirty floor and I couldn’t help crunching the twigs under my feet. Three lighted candles perched atop the desk helped illuminate the room somewhat. There wasn’t much furniture there, except a big desk and some chairs all around. Behind the desk, sitting on the only comfy chair evident, was a man of about thirty or so. I slowly turned to look around and saw about eight able-bodied men lining the walls on either side of him. “Boss,” Rayzek said after greeting the seated one. “We’ve brought Azure from Melize to see you.” He gestured for me to sit in the chair opposite the Boss and I unhurriedly did so. As I sat down, the Boss peered forward and only then did I get a close-up of the deep scar from his left earlobe all the way up to his left brow. For a moment I blinked at him as he stared gravely at me with his dark haunting eyes. I thought he looked familiar but couldn’t put a finger on where I had met him. “Uh, Boss,” Rayzek added as an afterthought. “Perhaps I should warn you she’s lost her memory after she hit her head.” “I see,” the Boss intoned, drumming his fingers against the top of the big rectangular desk while still keeping his penetrating gaze on me. He pushed his chair back suddenly and stood up. “Leave us.” The others looked startled and for a while, nobody moved. Then they all obliged by quietly trooping out and shutting the door silently behind them. The Boss took the opportunity to go around to my side and sit atop the desk beside me. “So, what do you remember?” he queried. Up close, his youthful countenance helped tame the hideous scar and made him appear less threatening. “Do you even remember who I am?” I shook my head regretfully. “I thought so,” he sighed. “But pray, tell me first what happened to you after we left you by the roadside.” So I told him all that I knew. He remained silent throughout my narration, only nodding and frowning thoughtfully at certain points in my story. “There are some parts you’re not telling,” he finally said. “Which part?” I tried to look calm but inside my heart was plummeting. “You don’t have to be embarrassed, Azure,” he said softly, as if reading my mind. “It’s just that no one who isn’t blind could possibly not notice the marks on you.” I didn’t say anything and just bit my lower lip in a bid to keep my temperament under control, so he whispered lightly, “Who did this to you, Azure?” I chased thoughts of the hateful Dark out of my mind and instead asked in a scathing voice, “Well, I don’t hear you telling me the story of how you got that ugly scar.” He remained quiet for a while, then smiled, stating, “You know how I got this scar – you were there with me when it happened. You may not recall it now, but I know the memory will resurface one of these days.” “Sorry I was rude,” I mumbled apologetically. “It just slipped out.” “That’s OK,” he smiled some more before frowning. “Tell me one thing – did this happen just before you left Melize?” I nodded slowly. “Was it somebody you know?” he gently prodded and saw me stiffen. “Dark, then. Your own twin’s husband.” I didn’t say a word, just looked at him in disbelief. He gave a low laugh and shrugged his shoulders. “It’s easy, really,” he explained. “The tell-tale teeth marks on your neck could only be done by descendants of blood-drinkers. See? They usually have longer fangs with a closer proximity than the average human.” I covered the teeth marks self-consciously and mentally complimented him on his brilliant – though embarrassing, to me, that is - deduction. “You ought to go to the police, you know,” he advised sternly. “I know,” I confessed, my head drooping. “But I can’t possibly do that. I know how Skye feels about him, and it would break her heart if I were to do this, despite all the hurt he’s caused.” “Well, it’s your choice,” he reached out and grabbed the lone flask standing on top of the desk. He passed it to me and I gratefully accepted and thirstily gulped down the drink to moisten desert-dry throat. “Now it’s my turn. Perhaps I should begin by introducing myself. I am Zernak, and we’ve known each other since you were a teenager. You used to call me by another name then, but I choose not to repeat that here. Anyway, after you got married and settled down in Mucia Pasifika – “ “Wait a minute,” I cut in. I know it was rude but I couldn’t stop myself, I was too surprised to hear this. “I got married to Que,” I corrected him. “In Melize.” He stared at me for a long time and only then explained, “But you divorced him and married some Pasifikan you met in Kirare Lipure.” For a while I could only be thankful I was already seated, otherwise I doubt my weak knees would have supported my weight well. I felt more than slightly woozy and experienced a bitter taste in my mouth when I swallowed painfully. “Are you OK?" he inquired, concern in his voice. My unblinking gaze must have disconcerted him somewhat. Either that or he was realizing the others hadn’t told me everything about myself when I woke up from my coma. I tried to stand up with effort, and began to stutter angrily, “Y-you’d better not say such things. I’m tired, I tell you; tired of all this – “ I almost bit my tongue when he reached out suddenly and clamped my face between his palms. He waited patiently for me to cool down somewhat before saying, “No, no hysterics now, Azure. Calm down. There, that’s better. Much better.” He let go of my cheeks and I stared woodenly at him. “Tell me what you’re thinking now,” he pleaded worriedly. “I’m just thinking,” I began with difficulty, “ what a sorry existence I must have. My life is a mess, nothing is what it seems anymore, I don’t even know who I am and people take advantage of me because I’ve lost my memory and only tell me things they want me to know. I’m such a klutz, I’m so gullible, so naïve, I let them lead me on … “ I stopped when I felt my throat constrict with pain. “I’m really sorry to hear that,” he murmured regrettably. “But I can offer you the truth, and you only have but to ask.” I studied his sincere profile and decided he was honest. “Tell me,” I asked, putting out a trembling hand to grasp his imploringly. “What is his name?” “Your second husband?” he looked at me in surprise and took my visible despair as a nod. “His name’s Naritake.” “How do you know?” I rasped in a strange voice that sounded so unlike mine. “How could I divorce Que? Did he give his consent?” “My poor, poor Azure,” he shook his head sadly. “I know because I came to visit you in Pasifika after I heard about your marriage. And yes, it’s not permissible for a wife to divorce her husband in Melize, but not in Pasifika.” “What happened then?” I asked listlessly. “I heard you grew tired of Que and had a big row with him, the details of which you wouldn’t divulge to me. At the same time, the Melizian government wanted to send you on a high priority mission to Kirare Lipure and you gladly took this opportunity to escape Que and Melize for a while to clear your head. “I suppose you didn’t intend to find yourself a new husband, it just happened from out of the blue. You kept crossing paths with Naritake who worked in the shop below the room you were staying in, and I guess over time, you couldn’t help developing feelings for him. You divorced Que legally and got married to Naritake. You invited the Fighters over afterward and passed Que the divorce papers. I’m not sure on this one, but I think you resigned from your post as a Melizian Fighter when you applied for Pasifikan citizenship.” He stared at my dazed expression, hesitating to continue. “Are you sure you’re willing to listen?” “Sure,” I told him dejectedly. “My life’s over anyway. Just shoot.” He paused before proceeding with his story. “I came over to congratulate you on your wedding afterward and that was when I learned that your life was in danger. I subsequently got mixed up in your mission by accident.” At this he snapped his fingers in front of my dull eyes and said, “Wake up, Azure. I want you to be fully alert when I tell you this.” “Hah!” I laughed sneeringly. “How can I, when I’m in this condition?” He nodded thoughtfully, slid off the desk, went over to the back to get a small packet, walked back to me, silently poured some dusty element from the packet into the opened flask and handed the drink to me. “You’ve gotta be mistaken if you think I’m gonna drink that,” I told him, shaking my head. “C’mon,” he coaxed me. “It’ll help you relax and be more attentive. Besides, this is better than having me pour a bucket of water on you, isn’t it? Look at me now.” I looked at his steady gaze as he brought two fingers up toward his eyes. “Trust me. I know you can’t recall the fact that we’re friends, and I’m deeply sorry for that, but look at my eyes and remember.” I don’t know what came over me. I felt like I could trust those unwavering eyes and without me realizing it, my hand had moved on its own accord, bringing the flask up to my lips and taking a deep long swig. I put it down on the desk and my lids began to droop heavily. I felt so lethargic and weak suddenly and rested my head atop my hands on the desk for a while. When I came to, I realized I was laid out atop the desk and that Zernak was nodding off to sleep in his plush chair next to me. I hastily sat up and this abrupt movement brought him out of his stupor. I sat more appropriately and glared at him while he rubbed the sleep out of his eyes. “Hey, don’t look at me so angrily,” he gently chided me. “I’ve always thought of you as a kid sister who constantly needed looking after, so don’t worry; I’m not interested in you in that way.” I didn’t know whether to be pleased or insulted by his blatant remark. “How do you feel now?” “More refreshed now, thank you.” Indeed, I felt more energetic and mentally alert, too. “Say, how long had I been sleeping, anyway?” He brought his wristwatch closer to a melting candle stub and declared, “Just under an hour.” I slid off the desk and returned to my chair. “So you said you wanted to tell me what you know.” “Yes, well,” he faltered. “But I need you to pay your utmost attention to what I’m about to say to you.” I shrugged and said, “Sure, why not?” He reached for a plastic folder on the desk surface and put it in front of me. “Why don’t you go through that while I tell you your bedtime story?” I took the folder and took out some documents and snapshots while he explained what they were. “That one’s a report from one of my men,” he pointed toward the sheaf of paper I was holding. “And that one there’s a stack of pictures taken by my men’s spy camera.” I shifted through the numerous photographs mostly of me walking hand-in-hand with a man who could only be Naritake. There were other pictures, too, including some of Zernak himself, even of a black heavily tinted limousine that always seemed to be around no matter where I went, and unexpectedly enough, some of a familiar-looking blond. “Perhaps you’d better explain everything from the start,” I sighed as I placed the folder’s contents onto the desk. “I’m sorry, but I just don’t follow.” “All right,” he agreed as he leaned back more comfortably in his chair. “I’ll start from the very beginning. Do you know why the Melizian government sent you to Pasifika?” I shook my head. “Good,” he nodded. “Now, don’t get me wrong. It’s just that it’s supposed to be a top-secret mission and I doubt your government’s gonna like it if you regain your memory and blab its details to others. I bet they’ve already taken steps to keep an eye on you and ensure there’s no leakage of information. “Anyway, the reason for your mission was this: One: somehow or rather, the government got wind of a plan to assassinate you. That was one of the reasons they sent you abroad, to divert you from harm’s way. Two: you see this gal?” He pointed at the blond woman in the picture and I nodded. Then I gasped as recognition hit me between the eyes. “It’s Lawles,” I exclaimed. There was no denying it, it was unmistakably Lawles despite her hiding behind the big dark glasses and the beret with her long hair tucked underneath. “Bingo,” he said, the ghost of a smile playing on his lips. “And that’s the most sensitive part. She happens to be the granddaughter of a most prominent Melizian citizen, one we suspect to in fact be a member of the Inner Council of the Global Committee itself.” An almost forgotten dream suddenly materialized in my mind and a name suddenly popped up when I opened my mouth to speak. “Rolan Lyes,” I uttered in realization. He nodded in surprise and said, “Yes, indeed. How did you know he was Lawles’ grandfather?” “I dreamt about him,” I clarified in a slow deliberate manner, disbelief tingeing my voice. “But I forgot what he looked like and what his name was when I woke up. I didn’t even recognize him when I met him at a ball not so long ago. But now, all of a sudden, my mind’s turned crystal-clear, and I remember.” No wonder she had no problem infiltrating the Fighter group despite the strict requirements – she must have pulled some strings to make sure she was accepted as a Fighter-in-training. “Interesting,” commented Zernak. “But you have to understand, this was a rather delicate subject in your small Melize. The government was aware that one of their officials might be embroiled in the execution of this plan, and I guess sending you abroad was the safest alternative. It could very well help save your life, and since the assassin wouldn’t know where you were, it would logically be assumed that he wouldn’t be able to hurt you. And if he can’t hurt you, the Melizian government won’t have to arrest him, who after all is one of them, and won’t have his name splashed all over the papers and bringing the whole country’s name to shame. “That was the major reason why your being sent to Pasifika was top-secret; even the other Fighters, including Que himself, were not to know anything about your location and the nature of your mission.” “But I still don’t understand what Lawles, or Lyes, has to do with any of this,” I told him in bafflement. “Look, let me make things a bit more clearer for you,” sighed Zernak. “Your own husband didn’t know where you were. Your own ‘twin’ didn’t know where you were. Even the other Fighters, making up members of your family, didn’t know where you were. But she knew. Isn’t that funny? And why did she choose to be inconspicuous while spying on you?” “Was she really spying on me?” I queried, still unsure. “It could just be a coincidence, her turning up in Kirare Lipure.” “Not when she suspiciously turns up in at least six locations you went to and on different days to boot,” stressed Zernak the exasperated man. “How do you think they found me?” I asked, wondering. “The most logical explanation is through the government,” replied Zernak. “No, it can’t be,” I objected. “The internal security’s pretty tight; I don’t think they’d just give away such confidential information like that.” “Then how else can you explain how she managed to follow you around wherever you went?” he retorted. “I’m telling you – she must have had a mole in the government – it could have been her grandpa, it could have been she herself, it could have been just any government official eager to make a fast buck. You know how the government’s able to keep track of you through the chip implanted inside your hand.” “Oh, yeah, I forgot,” I frowned as I recalled this piece of information. “That was why I decided to chuck away your old bionic hand,” he calmly told me. I gawked at him incredulously for a while before I spluttered out, “You were the one who took my hand and gave me this Frankensteinesque one instead?” “Don’t get too excited now,” he warned me. “I had to. There was no other choice. You see, I don’t exactly know why but Lawles seemed to be very much against you.” “Very much against me?” I repeated blankly. “She seems to hate you, loathe you, despise you, and believe me, those strong words had been carefully selected for what she had in plan for you,” he told me bluntly. “My men, upon investigating her, believed she meant to do you mortal harm.” “Look, I met her not so long ago,” I doubted Zernak’s belief. “She’s just a normal blondie. I don’t think she can ever harm a fly.” “You met her?” Zernak’s forehead furrowed as he contemplated. “Any ideas on what kind of grudge she could have against you?” “Nothing,” I said, chewing my lip thoughtfully, as I remembered something Henri had told me and my voice began to trail off as realization hit me. “Well, except for the fact that she had some sort of fling with Que … “ “And she doesn’t want to let him go, huh?” Zernak grinned as he understood Lawles’ motive. “But Henri said it was just a minor fling … “ I disputed obstinately in a last resort to will it to be true. “I’m not very well acquainted with this Henri of yours,” Zernak mentioned. “Tell me what he is to you.” “What he is to me?” I frowned and answered. “He’s my best friend, of course.” “But is he a friend of Que’s, too?” Zernak asked insistently. “Well, considering that they’re both Fighters, of course … “ “How did you get to know all this anyway?” I wondered out loud. “As I told you,” he said patiently. “It was all an accident. Since I took the trouble to visit you from so far away, you and Naritake insisted I stay at your apartment for a few days and let you show me around Pasifika. One day while we were out shopping in Kirare Lipure, I noticed a mysterious black car which seemed to be following us. Feeling uneasy, I contacted my men and asked them to investigate the car. The rest is history.” 31) Kirare Lipur (also incomplete!) I then booked the next available flight to Kirare Lipure, which as the capital city of the newly formed country of Pasifika, previously known as East Banks, was five hours away. I had the strong urge to leave all unhappiness behind and make a fresh start. Just about anywhere was fine with me, though the sudden realization that I had no recollection of my hometown suddenly made me long to return to my roots. Due to thick fog, the plane had to circle around and around above the airport before landing at about five o’clock in the morning. When I stepped off the plane, mist rolled about making me imagine funny shapes as it enveloped me in an icy embrace that made me think it was winter. I took a cab and asked him to deliver me to a hotel, any hotel was all right with me. Inside, I took off my scarf and sunglasses, thinking that perhaps I wouldn’t be such a recognizable figure in another country. The cab driver finally dropped me off at a five-star hotel funnily named The Blushing Prince. I checked in under a phony name and tipped the happy bellboy generously when he helped carry my bag up to my suite. Once I had locked the door, I kicked off my shoes and exhaustedly fell into a deep slumber. I woke up around noon and enjoyed the spectacular view from my window as I waited for my ordered lunch to arrive. I made out that I was on the topmost floor and marveled at the many skyscrapers in sight. Contrary to my expectations, the bustling city spread below appeared as busy and as well developed as Kismet Kesuma. 32) The Meeting The next day, after an outing in order to seek familiarity but returning after having found nothing, I opened the door to my room and found Henri sitting in the armchair, waiting patiently for my return. For a moment I could only gasp while I stood there by the door, frozen, letting my clutch bag fall from my limp hands and lie on the floor. He saw me and stood up, and I felt my heart break when I saw how smart he looked in his black turtleneck and slim dark pants. He took a step toward me, his welcoming smile broadening over his face, and I realized suddenly that this was the one of the sights I had missed and thought about most since the day I l left the mansion. I was overjoyed to see his pleasant face again, and flew into his arms. “Just a moment while I shut the door,” he managed to mumble as he let go of me. I turned to look and saw him shutting the door while a curious hotel employee was slowly strolling by in the corridor outside. Feeling suddenly faint, I went to sit at the edge of the bed and he came to sit down next to me, taking my hand in his. “How have you been?” he asked me softly, fingers lifting the strands of hair that fell into my eyes. “I was so worried about you.” It was good to hear him say ‘I’, not ‘we’ or ‘the others’. I smiled at him and didn’t think twice about hugging him. It felt so right to breathe in his familiar scent and feel his comforting presence again. “That bad, huh?” he was laughing at me as he disengaged himself and held my hand. I looked up into his amused eyes and noticed the slight changes in him since I last saw him: how his hair had become lighter and grown longer, one almost poking his eyeball, how his air seemed somewhat more confident than before, how the edges of his eyes lifted up when he smiled and creased when he frowned where there had been none before. “You should eat well, you know,” he said in a serious tone. “You look as thin as a skeleton. Haven’t they been feeding you well here in your hometown?” I laughed then told him earnestly, “I missed you so much.” Then, wondering how he could have gotten in so easily, I asked, “How did you get in anyway?” “Simple,” he replied, his eyes twinkling. “I just told them I’m your husband and they promptly gave me another set of keys.” “Really?” I was aghast. “Didn’t they check you for verification first? I didn’t realize it was so easy to enter someone’s room.” “At some places the security is tight,” shrugged Henri. “You just happened to be unlucky enough to stay here.” Then, remembering Que, I felt obligated to ask about his condition. “Que’s fine,” Henri assured me. “He practically went ballistic when we found your car parked outside this shop but no you. I think he meant to look for you sooner but he had to attend the court proceedings, you know, with regards to your other car. In fact, he’s in Mugamba now, searching for you.” “Really?” I didn’t realize Que had it in him to look for me so far away. “I just came back from there a few days ago.” “Lucky me, then,” Henri smiled warmly. It felt as if he made the room so much brighter with each smile he gave. “If I’d come looking for you sooner, I wouldn’t have met you.” “No you wouldn’t,” I smiled back at him and hugged him again. I finally let go when I thought of something. “Did it still hurt? After he hit you?” “What?” Henri chuckled. “That mosquito bite? Of course I’m OK.” “Aren’t you angry at him?” “What for? I could never be angry with a friend for long. I understand and sympathize with him, to some degree. Besides, nobody’s perfect. Well, with the exception of Skye, of course. And he’s always got this uncivilized streak in him, I guess, despite his harmless façade, which probably came about because he’d been a hermit so long and hardly knows how to interact properly in human society. You know how he’s always blowing off steam, and does the craziest things when he’s mad, but he always regrets it later and is sorry for it afterward. He was just being protective toward you and felt threatened by me being your close friend, felt that I was challenging his position.” “OK. That’s enough Que-talk for now. How’s Penny, by the way?” “Oh, she’s all right,” he replied dismissively. “Everybody misses you, you know.” I tentatively reached out to lift the strands of hair that fell into his eyes, just as he did to me a few minutes ago. “Why doesn’t Penny see the same person I see?” I whispered. “She will one day,” Henri said back. “I’ll make sure of it. Or die trying.” “Wouldn’t it be better for you to find somebody else?” I joked. “Somebody who already likes you as you are?’ “But then I wouldn’t want to steal a friend’s wife away from him,” he answered without hesitation. I understood his meaning and sighed. “Yes,” I acknowledged. “We couldn’t let that happen, could we?” “No, sirree,” he agreed, wearing a serious countenance. “We’d better not.” I stared at his solemn face and burst out laughing. Then I threw my arms around him and gave him another squeeze. “But I missed you anyway!” After a while, Henri asked whether I was hungry. Realizing that he was the hungry one actually, I quickly suggested we go down for a stroll near the river where there were lots of cafes lining the street outside. He agreed and after I had washed my face with lukewarm water and freshened up, we left the hotel lobby and linked arms while walking down the street. I knew he had avoided asking me what caused me to run away for fear of hurting my feelings, so I went ahead and asked instead, “How’s Dark and Skye, by the way?” My feigned nonchalance didn’t fool him and he whistled, “So it really was him, then?” I kept silent and he went on. “Que said he heard Dark’s voice when you dropped the phone, and Skye swore she recognized the sound of the car as Dark’s, but when he came back and claimed he was at the office all the while and even had the security officers there vouch for his testimony – no doubt they had been bribed - he convinced Skye it wasn’t him and Skye believed him.” “What?” I cried, having a hard time believing what I heard. “She believed him?” Henri nodded, answering, “He’s her husband, after all. I told you already, he’s pretty good with magic. I bet he has Skye under some kind of hypnotic spell, that’s why she’s such a blubbering idiot when it comes to him.” I bit my lip and urged him to continue. “But you should have seen that husband of yours,” Henri chuckled. “He wasn’t fooled for a minute. He saw the scratches on Dark’s face and arms that even cleansing couldn’t hide and gave him a shiner – even worse than the one he gave me.” He stopped then peered at me carefully while touching my cheek. “He didn’t manage to hurt you, did he? Tell me the truth. I’d never forgive him if he did.” “He did knock me around some,” I admitted ruefully. “But other than that, I’m OK.” “I am so glad to hear that,” he laughed shakily. “I thought your face looked a little swollen just now, now I know why.” We changed to less awkward subjects and promptly drove out all thoughts of Dark. After strolling and enjoying the river view for a while, Henri suggested a café nearby and we promptly sat down on the seats outside. Henri ordered a cup of coffee and a sandwich with everything in it, and I opted for milk tea and bagels. Henri ate with gusto, telling me the last time he ate was just before his flight landed at eleven, which was six hours ago. He said it didn’t take him long to find out where I stayed as he had gone to a phone booth and called up every hotel in the phone book in alphabetical order. He was glad to find out I had indeed used one of my normal aliases to check into my hotel and this had made his inquiry a little easier. The problem was he got lost when trying to find the hotel, and realized only a few hours later that there were several hotels bearing the same name in different locations all throughout the city. That plus the fact that the taxi driver was cashing in on some lost tourist who clearly didn’t know where he was or where he wanted to go, was how he ended up in my room hours later. I asked him whether he had brought a suitcase along and he quickly sobered up. “No, actually,” he said, stirring his coffee with a teaspoon. “I wasn’t counting on being here long, you see. I meant to bring you home straight away. In fact, I’m supposed to inform the others once I found you, but my cell phone battery’s gone kaput.” I stared at him. “What? Don’t you want to sample the hospitality, the cuisine here? Don’t you want to go sightseeing at all?” “Maybe later,” he promised. “But not now. Now just doesn’t seem the appropriate time for that.” I kept my eyes lowered, taking in the stitching on the white linen tablecloth. We both kept silent as I waited for Henri to finish his drink. Then, after we’ve paid at the counter inside, I implored Henri to accompany me on a walk along the riverbank, and he complied. We were walking about when I suddenly spied across the river the curiously familiar figure of a man hurrying somewhere. I couldn’t exactly put a finger on where I’d seen him but I felt my heart racing when I looked at him. So I quickly found a coin and inserted it into the slot of a telescope nearby and used it to look at the other side of the riverbank. Henri asked what was wrong and I slowly let go of the telescope, letting him take a peek. His smile disappeared when he saw who it was, straightened himself up and looked at me with sympathy in his eyes. “I remember,” I whispered feebly, feeling as if my head was spinning and the ground was shaking as were my weak knees which couldn’t hold my weight any longer. I fell down in a heap, and Henri helped me up. Some onlookers tried to offer assistance but Henri declined politely. I could only murmur repeatedly “I remember him” as helped me up to my room. “Here, drink this,” he offered a glass of water when he had seated me on the armchair. I distractedly accepted the glass and sipped it while staring at the wall opposite. I took a second sip and noticed a change in the taste, then looked down and only then realized my tears were falling into the glass and mixing with the drink. I put it down on the coffee table beside me with a trembling hand. “I remember him,” I repeated. Visions of him passed in front of my eyes, how he was strong and brave during sad times, how he was fun to have around during good times. All of a sudden I understood why I had been strangely attracted to Henri. It wasn’t because of who Henri was, rather it was because of someone who he reminded me of. I made a sudden decision and stood up abruptly. “I have to go,” I told Henri and walked toward the door. “No, you can’t,” he called out to me and grabbed my hand, preventing me from approaching the door. “Please don’t do this to yourself, Azure. I have to go back tonight. With you, if I manage to find you. Those were my orders.” He took my limp hand and led me to the bed where he asked me to lie down while he packed my things. As he chucked all my items into my suitcase, I stared at the ceiling and reminisced. He helped me check out and led me outside to wait for a cab. But I suddenly started walking toward the riverbank beside the hotel and he quickly picked up my suitcase and ran after me. He tried to shake me by the shoulders but I kept repeating that I had to go find the man I had glimpsed. In the end, he gave in and took my hand as we crossed the river on a stone pedestrian bridge not far away. There, we tried looking for him here and there, asking passersby if they had seen him, but all to no avail. In the end, Henri had me admit there was no way we could find him and convinced me to follow him to the airport. We went up to a taxi stand on the curb and hailed a taxi. After the driver tossed my suitcase into his trunk, we made our way slowly through the congested traffic. It seemed like an eternity had passed when we finally stopped in front of the airport door. Henri paid the fare, held my arm firmly while using the other one to carry my suitcase and led me inside. We went to an airline booth, were lucky that the next flight was an hour away and that there were still seats available, though only those in the economy class was left. While Henri was purchasing our tickets, we heard somebody call out and turned to see who it was. A few feet behind us I saw Que just standing there panting, his bag in one hand. I was shocked to see how haggard and tired he appeared, with his disheveled look and the bags under his red eyes. His shirt was partially tucked out and he was unshaven and probably hadn’t had a decent bath for some time, too. He looked at me and I saw the conflicting emotions mirrored in his eyes: relief, grief, hurt, joy. My heart went out to him, and I took a tentative step forward, and he dropped his bag onto the floor, broke into a glad grin and opened his arms out to me. I broke into a run and went into his arms. “God, I missed you so much,” he told me as he gave me a big squeeze and I quavered under a new surge of emotions that couldn’t be denied. He slowly lifted my chin up and studied my face as if trying to memorize my profile then kissed each eyebrow. “You really made me worry. Please, don’t ever leave me. I don’t think I can live through that again.” My shoulders trembled as I clung on to him. He smiled and tenderly wiped away the tears with his index finger. “Did the brute hurt you?” he asked suddenly, frowning while stroking my cheek. I shook my head, not wanting him to prolong the Dark issue as he embraced me again, letting me know just how glad he was. “We could lodge a case against him, you know,” he was telling me. “We couldn’t do it on your behalf while you were gone, but now that you’ve come back I can ask the police to examine traces of DNA material in his car and the clothes he wore on that night.” I realized this would bring unnecessary pain to my ‘twin’, Skye, and again shook my head, requesting Que to just let it be. He nodded thoughtfully, respecting my wishes, though I could see from his expression that he didn’t share my sentiments. I hugged him back and a happy smile crossed his face. “I will never, never let you go,” he vowed. “Not now, not ever. And I want to be the one you run to for help.” He reluctantly let go of me when Henri beckoned him over. He went over to Henri who started whispering and gesturing agitatedly to him. He nodded thoughtfully and turned to look at me as Henri went to purchase another ticket. Que then smiled as he walked over to where I stood and took me in his arms once more. It was as if he couldn’t get enough of me, and for a while this contented me. “You’ll always have a place in my heart,” he promised me as he tightened his grip about me. “A place where you can come home to. Always.” I cried silently as I buried my head into his chest. After some time, I lifted my face. He ran his fingers through my hair for some time and only stopped when he realized I had stiffened up. He saw me peering transfixed at something over his shoulder and swung around. Approaching us amongst the moving crowd, hand-in-hand, laughing over a personal joke, was a couple who clearly seemed in love with each other. When the man, the same one I had seen on the other side of the river earlier that day, finally laid his eyes on Henri, Que and me, he stopped dead in his tracks. As the woman beside him looked across at us curiously, all three of us took in the matching wedding bands on their fingers, sparkling brilliantly in the way only newly-bought jewelry could. Que’s hand encircling my waist tightened protectively. “Hello, Naritake,” Que greeted him. I could only peer at Naritake with my face half buried against Que’s chest. Naritake stared at me as if he couldn’t believe his eyes, then rubbed them so hard he almost clawed them out. His new wife pulled at his sleeve and feeling alarmed, asked him who we were and what was happening. “I see you have somebody new now,” Que was saying to him as he gestured toward the clinging woman, his grip around me firm and resolute. “Guess you just couldn’t wait any longer than a few years, huh?” Naritake opened his mouth to speak, but nothing came out of his mouth. He wore the look of one utterly destroyed. I couldn’t bear to look so I shut my eyes, desperate to forget the pain evident on his face. “Look, I know Pasifikan law,” Que told him coolly. “Thanks to you, I know polygamy’s prohibited here. The first marriage will automatically be annulled whenever a Pasifikan takes a second wife. You don’t deserve her, Naritake. You couldn’t even wait for her to come back.” “I didn’t know,” Naritake said in a trembling voice as he fell down to his knees. I peered at him and was dismayed to witness that his hands were clenched and his eyes were tightly shut. “I searched everywhere for her.” “That’s not good enough,” said Que quietly. “You should have told us earlier. If we’d only been alerted the moment she went missing, we would have been able to use all our resources in finding her. Instead, you kept yourself in hiding and avoided all contact with us.” “I couldn’t help it,” Naritake’s shoulders shook as he mumbled with difficulty. “I thought she had … “ here he choked as a wave of emotions swept over him. “And when they produced the cert after two years, I just lost all hope.” He stood up shakily and made an effort to stumble toward me, his wife looking at him incredulously in the background. “Azure,” he croaked as he extended a hand out to me. “If I’d only known … I’m so sorry … please believe me … “ “Stop it,” Que said rudely, swinging me around away from him and hugging me so fiercely my chest hurt. “You gave up on her, Naritake. You didn’t search for her well enough. You failed to ask for our help. You, who’d only known her for a short time, gave up waiting for her after she’s been missing for how long? Two years? Do you know how long I had to wait till I finally met her again?” Naritake’s step faltered and his hand drooped by his side. His slanting eyes watered and I hurriedly looked away. “I will never let anybody take my wife away from me,” swore Que through gritted teeth. “I’d rather die than let that happen again.” Naritake’s wife went up to him and held on to him, crying though not really understanding what was happening. But he only stared at us blankly and didn’t even seem to be aware of her presence. “Come on,” said Que, turning to go with his arm still around me. “Let’s go.” I chanced a look over my shoulder and saw Naritake slumping, a broken man, with his wife sobbing hysterically as onlookers paused and looked on curiously. I felt pity for him, but I sympathized more with the wife who probably didn't realize the history I had with her husband. On the flight, sandwiched between Henri and Que, I felt extremely weary and wasn’t in the mood to talk. I declined when the stewardess asked me what I wanted to eat, my appetite totally gone. When Henri asked, Que explained that he had come to a dead end in Mugamba and had been waiting for his call. Then, when Henri’s call never came, Que suspected he might have found a lead and on an impulse hurried over to Kirare Lipure. In fact, he had only just arrived and was on the way out of the airport when he caught sight of Henri and me then chased after us. Que kept a firm grip on my hand throughout the flight. He asked me to lean on his shoulder if I needed to sleep, but he was well off to dreamland, snoring as rest finally took over his exhausted body, way before I had shut my eyes and succumbed to a merciful dreamless sleep. But before I lost consciousness, my last memory was of Que whispering in his sleep, “Now you know how it feels … when the one you love is … in love with someone else.” 33) The Homecoming When we landed in the Rkuyu Airport, all the others were already gathered and waiting for us when we stepped out of the arrival hall. They gave us a warm welcome and seemed very pleased and relieved to have us back on Melizian earth safe and sound. Skye hugged me for the longest time and only laughed and let go of me when I finally asked her to. It was good to be back on familiar soil and feel welcomed by the comforts of home and friends again. Once home, Skye gave me another long hug and happily whispered that her orders to do me harm had been cancelled. In fact, the Inner Circle had singly requested that I hand in a written report of whatever it is I remembered or knew or understood soon. I had smiled wryly at this, and told her I’d submit the report before the week was over. Henri, Que and I were all experiencing jet lag so we retired to bed as soon as possible. I woke up just before noon the next day, feeling more rested. But I didn’t go down for lunch straight away, preferring instead to lie down in bed and mull things over. Then I went to the alcove and thumbed through some of my written materials. Now that I knew more about myself and what to look for, the writings made sense to me. In an opened envelope bearing a Pasifikan stamp and addressed to Henri, I found a long letter scrawled in my handwriting. I realized suddenly that Henri had most probably put it there on purpose for me to read, but then I had been too ignorant then to notice nor understand its value. But now that I knew, I began to read with apt interest the account on my first encounter with Naritake, at a 24-hour convenience store in Kirare Lipure. I have such a messy love life, I told myself. Warm tears slid down my face as I read the candid analysis of my romantic feelings for Naritake. Although I didn’t remember part of it, I had enough memory of him to be moved deeply by words from my past. There was no explanation about what I was doing in Kirare Lipure, except that I stayed in a two-story flat above a row of shops and often went to the convenience store downstairs. That was where I first met Naritake, manning the counter. I wasn’t exactly sure why, perhaps it was his Maranganese eyes, perhaps it was the honesty on his plain face which reminded homesick me a lot of Henri, though in a different way. It wasn’t long before I began dropping by almost everyday, especially when I knew it was his shift. At first, he was somewhat aloof and reserved, though he must have suspected something because I never could pass up the chance to hold a one-sided chat with him every time I bought a newspaper, a toothbrush, a tube of toothpaste, another toothbrush. One day, I threw caution to the wind and asked him out for a cup of coffee. He was reluctant at first, but when the store manager overheard our conversation, he generously gave Naritake some time off, saying that it was time he took a break anyway and that a cup of coffee would do him some good. Pressured into it, Naritake had no choice but to obediently follow me to the coffee shop across the street. We chose a table close to the window, and he took the seat opposite me. I had a milkshake, while he asked for milk coffee. He wasn’t much of a talker, but I unabashedly asked him leading questions that had him expose himself to me. I learnt that he was five years older than me, came from a poor family, and was taking evening classes to improve himself. I sensed that he felt somewhat out of place being with me, and that he was self-conscious of his lack of education, but I tried my best to make him feel at ease. After that, I started loitering around the shop whenever I knew his break was coming up, and asked him out. It wasn’t long before we were going out everyday, even during his off days. I couldn’t help being strangely awed by his strength and resilience, by his constant drive for self-improvement. I couldn’t stop myself from being drawn toward his openness, dark humor, patience and understanding. I respected his wisdom despite his lack of education, and he wasn’t stingy with stories about his past, most of them painful. I found comfort and solace in his normalcy. Nothing much happened in his everyday life, just the same old things repeating over and over again, and I, being unfamiliar with such, appreciated this all the more. All in all, we enjoyed each other’s company tremendously. I used to feel an ache in my heart, a void in my life, every time we couldn’t be together. I felt like I needed to see him everyday just to keep on living. Despite my dependency on him, and my demands that he open himself to me, I never talked much about my past, and he had the impression that I was simply this poor foreign Melizian who was sent abroad for training or something. And that was where the narration ended. Only a warning ensued, imploring Henri to swear not to breathe a word of this to any of the Fighters, especially to Que. There were still a lot of things I didn’t understand, though I suddenly wasn’t sure whether I would ever be ready to face the truth. Hearing my stomach growl, I called up Eva and asked her to bring my meal up to my room. In the meantime, I took a quick shower and heard a knock on the door when I stepped out of the bathroom. I ignored it, expecting Eva to just leave the tray in the corridor outside. But the knocking continued, so I groaned and went to see what the matter was. When I opened the door, I was surprised to find Que with my meal. He stepped in before I could say a word and sighing, I closed the door behind him. He stood there with the tray, waiting for me before I gestured that I wanted to eat in the alcove. We both went and sat down on the two-seater. Que then laid the tray on my lap. As I tucked into the meal, he noted the towel wrapped around my head and the terry robe I wore. “You look great,” he finally commented, and I frowned at him. “Yeah, right,” I said sarcastically in between mouthfuls. “I would have dressed more appropriately, but then I was expecting Eva, not you.” But I had to admit he didn’t look half bad himself. Restful sleep had done him a world of good, and now that he was clean-shaven and dressed in cleaner clothes, he smelled good, too. He watched me eat until I couldn’t bear it any longer. “Didn’t anybody ever tell you it’s rude to stare?” I snapped at him. “I’m sorry,” he muttered and looked away. I felt foolish looking at the back of his head so I groaned and lowered my half-eaten plate of glutinous rice onto the floor. “What is it this time?” I finally asked him, though I refused to look at him. He turned to face me again as I asked, “Why are you checking on me? I’m not running anywhere, at least not today.” “I just wanted to see how you were,” he whispered softly. “I thought perhaps that you’d like to talk.” I sighed and slumped back in the seat, staring up at the ceiling. The last thing I wanted to do was talk, and the last person I wanted to see was Que, but now that he was here and offering me the answers to my questions, I couldn’t help realizing it wouldn’t be a bad idea to grab the opportunity. “Sure, why not,” I finally consented. He looked at me intently. “Are you still angry at me, Azure?” I had to laugh bitterly at that one. “I don’t know what to feel now. Am I supposed to be angry? Happy? Sad? I just don’t know. All I know is I feel all numb inside, like there’s a hollow within my soul.” He hesitated, then asked, “Do you regret all that’s happened?” I thought it over before answering, “Not really, now that you mention it. Though I can’t say for sure since I don’t really understand everything yet. But it’s just that I believe everything happens for a reason, and I’m OK with that.” He nodded empathetically. “So, do you feel like talking?” “I don’t really care,” I said carelessly. “Either way it doesn’t matter, not now.” His head drooped and he cradled his head in his hands as he murmured, “You know, you have to understand, it’s very painful for me to tell you all this, same as it must be painful for you to hear it. But I guess I’m the best person to tell it to you; I don’t want you to hear it from somebody else’s mouth. “I guess it’s high time I told you about Naritake. It all happened slightly more than three years ago. “Remember when I told you that one day you simply went missing? Yes, I know I should have told you about this earlier, but then I just couldn’t bear bringing up Naritake’s name. “I only learned much later that you didn’t actually run away from home, rather you were sent on a top secret assignment to Kirare Lipure. But I suspected the real reason why you purposely neglected to inform me or the others was because you wanted to get back at me.” At this point of time, he stopped talking and just stared off into space. I frowned and nudged him on, and only then did he blink and come to his senses, and continued. “There’s no easy way to say this, but I’ve already made my decision – no more secrets. I don’t want to keep anything from you, same as I wouldn’t want you to keep anything from me. “It’s just that,” he halted, then proceeded with difficulty, “it’s just that – drat! I have to come clean with you – I was involved with Lawles back then.” I gasped as he nodded distressedly. “I know, I was wrong. I’m sorry. But back then, you can’t imagine how lonely I was, and how angry we were at each other. I was tired of it, and thought that I deserved some comforting. Besides, I kept telling myself that you had Henri around you all the time, so why shouldn’t I do the same? When Lawles came along, I found her charmingly attractive, attentive and agreeable. I knew she was attracted to me, but never in my wildest dreams did I imagine the extent she was willing to go to. “I suppose in a way, it was pretty ironic. I got you by drugging you. She had a similar idea as well. When she called me up to continue on some work discussion and asked me to have dinner at her place, I didn’t suspect anything. But she spiked my drink and I must have fallen asleep in her living room afterward, and that’s the whole truth. “She then called you up the next morning, telling you she had something urgent to discuss with you. You promptly came and stepped into her snare. While she pretended to discuss some government bureaucracy stuff with you, I happened to walk in then. “You can imagine how strickened I felt when I saw you there. I’m not really sure what went through your mind, because you quietly stood up, returned the papers to Lawles and walked out. You never did confront me about it, though you made sure you avoided all contact with me after that. “By that time, I had made myself believe nothing harmful had actually happened between Lawles and I, so I decided to break clean with Lawles. I learned too late then how venomous a woman scorned could be, for she suddenly claimed she was pregnant with my child and threatened to sell the news to the reporters if I didn’t take responsibility. When I didn’t comply, she marched straight to the papers. Everybody knew then what happened and I was publicly disgraced. “I know I was a fool back then, I was so gullible and hardly able to make good judgment. I had forced all this onto myself. But no matter how stupid I was, at least I knew enough to ask her to show proof of her pregnancy. At first she refused to do so, but after some friendly persuasion from Qit and me, we walked her to a clinic, made sure nobody was in the ladies’ to swap urine samples with her, and when the urine and ultrasound tests came out negative, I was very relieved when the doctor confirmed she wasn’t pregnant, and that she had been lying about it to get me. “But then, the results came too late. The damage had already been done. I went back home and was told by Ms. Sandy that you had already packed and left with no forwarding address. I frantically searched for you everywhere: the Army Camp, the bus station, the airport. I called up the caretakers of all your houses but I couldn’t trace you at all. It was like you had been swallowed up whole and disappeared completely. “I hated myself then, and realized perhaps a little too late that my life was meaningless without you. I tried to seek the Ministry of Defense for help in informing me of your whereabouts since they could track you through the chip you had inside you. That was when I found out it had been them who had sent you off in the first place, and that the mission was highly sensitive and critical that not even I was supposed to know of your whereabouts. “I tried my best to bribe the officers concerned, and even attempted to use force on them, but all to no avail. I even tried to track down your credit card transactions and bank account activities, but you had probably been warned not to use them, for there had been no activity for some time. I had to go home a failure and wait for several months until I finally heard from you again. “It was through an invitation card for a housewarming party that I received through the mail and addressed to all the Fighters. I saw that it was in your handwriting and felt so happy I could fly. I couldn’t wait to see you again and with the others we quickly booked the next available flight to Kirare Lipure. “We went up to the penthouse you had directed us to, and when I pressed the doorbell, I was stunned to see a man opening the door for us. My first impression was that we had got the wrong house, but then he smiled, asked us whether we were Fighters from Melize and invited us in. “He took us upstairs to the roof where you were busy preparing refreshments for everyone. I thought you looked breathtakingly wonderful and wanted nothing more than to run to you and hold you in my arms once more, but he beat me to it. I could only stare blankly at you, hardly comprehending what I saw, as you hugged him and greeted us and introduced us to Naritake, your new husband. “I was more than crushed and felt like a zombie but mechanically went through all the motions of being a polite guest. I felt like I had wasted all my time and effort coming there unnecessarily and couldn’t bring myself to eat the food you had prepared for us. “But the worst came when you approached me and calmly passed me the divorce papers. You explained that you had chosen to stay there in Kirare Lipure and become a Pasifikan, and that the Melizian government had amazingly approved your application for resignation as a Fighter. And to think they never even told me about this. “You told me that in Pasifika, it was permissible for a wife to seek divorce from her husband even without his consent, and this was what you had done. You realized that the Melizian law would probably not recognize it, and that was one of the reasons you didn’t intend to return to Melize at all. “I felt as if the world was crashing down around me and felt like my life had ended. I was so distraught that Qit actually had to hold my hand and lead me all the way back. Once home, I couldn’t sleep, couldn’t eat, couldn’t do anything. I just sat around and brooded, and I knew the gang pitied me, and that made it worse. I understood how hurt you must have been with my fling with Lawles, but that didn’t stop me feeling as if you had intentionally humiliated me just to get back at me. “I hated everything about Naritake. I felt that he was the epitome of Mr. Wrong, and if ever there was a man a girl should avoid marrying at all costs, then it’d be him. I just couldn’t understand what could’ve drawn you to him anyway. He was ugly and short; with flabby arms and no formal education – though you did support him through college later on and helped him become a teacher; an ambiguous background; no real profession to be proud of; poor – I doubt he could have supported you on his meager store clerk salary; and had no good prospects. It pained me to see you throwing away all the comforts and niceties of home just to be with a loser, and that I just couldn’t take. “In the end, one thing stood out clearly in my mind: that I wanted you, needed you, deserved you. I had to get you back no matter what, and I was willing to pay any price for it. I hired private investigators to spy on you, and I used to drop by to see you when I knew you were alone. I kept begging you to come back to me, but you had already made up your mind and kept rejecting my proposals. “In the end, tired and angry, I hired a couple of goons to pay Naritake a visit when you weren’t around. They were supposed to gently persuade him to release you, but I guess they got overexcited and went overboard. I heard afterward that Naritake had had his arm broken, and you were so furious at me that you actually had a court order to prohibit me from going anywhere near the two of you. “But I let the investigators hound you, spying on your every move. Finally, you grew tired of everything and did the only thing you knew best – you abandoned the apartment and left with Naritake to who-knows-where. I never found out where you had gone to, you had learnt from your mistakes and was very careful about not leaving any clues behind. “I tried to search for you, but I couldn’t find you anywhere. I never lost hope, though, and always kept myself abreast with the world’s news in case your name popped up somewhere. “I waited for almost three years before I finally saw you again, when they brought you in, unconscious, all the way from Northern Mugamba, I was ecstatic and almost couldn’t believe my luck. And when I found out Skye had had the government reinstate you and give you back your citizenship, I was very much comforted. Then when I learned you had lost your memory, I was sad yet happy at the same time. I realized it was bad of me to feel this way, but I felt secure knowing you had no memory of what transpired in Kirare Lipure. And I was thankful I had finally been given the chance to start life anew, with you.” He stopped talking and cast his eyes downward. When he raised his head up to turn slowly and face me, I saw that tears were gathering in his eyes. “I know I can’t expect much,” he said chokingly, “but I do hope you’d give me another chance for us to try again.” I only stared at him for a while, then I quietly stood up, entered my walk-in closet and changed, then walked out through the bedroom door without a backward glance at Que. Epilog A week had passed since Azure and Que renewed their vows. At first, Azure had insisted that they re-marry, but when checked with the marriage registrar, the duo found out that their marriage was still valid according to Melizian law, and that they couldn’t re-register a marriage unless it had been annulled - in Melize. They now live in Azure’s two-story bungalow on a cliff overlooking the Pasifikan Sea, about an hour’s ride from the mansion. It had been Azure’s and Que’s place to hang out when they wanted privacy back when they were happy and before Azure went off to marry Naritake. There hadn’t been enough evidence for Azure to press charges against Lawles. In the end, she was remanded only for a short while and released when no evidence could be established. She still had her Fighter license and there was nothing the gang could do. Today, Skye had baked her famous chocolate cake and decided to drag Penny along to pay the couple a surprise visit. They saw Azure’s red Pereli parked haphazardly outside the house and was glad to know she was in. When Skye pressed the doorbell, she had to wait awhile before she heard the scampering of feet inside. Then the door creaked open and Que’s beaming face peered at them from behind the door. “Skye! Penny!” he sounded happy to see them. “What a pleasant surprise. Come in, come in.” “You’ve sure added a few pounds since we last saw you,” noted Penny as she stepped in. “Ha-ha,” smiled Que. “That just means she’s been feeding me well, that’s all.” Skye stood in the corridor and passed the cake to Que, who accepted it happily. “Just something for the both of you,” she remarked self-consciously as Que gushed that the exotic-looking cake looked mouth-watering. As Que carried it to the kitchen, she called out worriedly, “Where is she by the way, Que?” “Oh, she’s outside, at the back,” came Que’s voice. “Painting, I think. Why don’t you go out there with Penny first? I’ll come along as soon as I’ve cut this cake.” So Skye and Penny wandered outside through the opened back door. They found Azure with her back toward them and an easel in front of her. She had a knife in one hand and a palette in the other, and was standing on a cliff with a sheer drop ending where the furious waves met the blackish brown rocks below and pounded them into sand. Even from afar, they could see the accursed dark tattoo which had strangely resurfaced on her left arm, though it still seemed fainter than it used to be. Skye frowned as she caught the whiff of cigarette smoke and saw how Azure’s bony elbow jutted out prominently from her sleeveless white cotton dress. Penny made a passing remark about how Que should have given his wife some of his weight to balance things up. “The wind’s rather strong today,” Azure commented without looking back at them, flinging the cigarette butt over the cliff using her knife-hand as the duo walked across the young green blades of grass toward her. “I feel a storm coming.” Skye and Penny kept quiet as they looked over Azure’s shoulder at her painting of where the sea met the sky. They didn’t say much, but both couldn’t help finding the unfinished landscape arresting, yet the way the angry waves crashing onto the boulders were depicted was a tad disturbing. Pretty soon they heard a holler and turned around to see a grinning Que waving and trudging up the grass-trodden path bearing a picnic hamper and a checkered tablecloth dangling from his arm. He put the basket down on the ground some distance away and invited Skye and Penny over to where he stood. “The ground’s a bit rocky there,” he explained as the guests walked up to him. “It’s more level here.” He flapped the tablecloth and arranged it on the ground, then invited the two to sit as he took out the slices of cake he had put inside a container as well as a bottle of grape juice and a stack of plastic glasses. He merely laughed when Penny commented on his simple way of entertaining guests. “You’re not gonna call Azure to join us?” Skye reminded Que. “Right, I’ll do that,” agreed Que, then yelled out to Azure to join them. Azure seemed a trifle reluctant, then she simply abandoned the easel and the knife on the ground beside her. She spun around and walked slowly toward the sitting trio, unsmiling. “Is she smoking again?” Skye asked anxiously. Que seemed to hesitate before answering. “Yes,” he finally admitted. “She smuggled a few cartons in from Kirare Lipure.” “And does she still get those weird dreams?” Skye asked Que concernedly. “Not for the past few nights,” Que replied subduedly as he poured drinks for everyone. He proceeded to explain how he was always being kicked about at night right after they had moved into the house, so much so that he finally had to sleep on the floor instead. Penny roared with laughter when she heard this. “But things are finally quietening down somewhat,” he added thoughtfully. “And for that I’m very thankful for.” “And how about her memory?” Sky queried. “She hasn’t recalled everything yet,” replied Que. “I’m not even sure she will, one of these days. Just bits and pieces mainly. Though she can play the piano by ear now. Heck, I hate to admit it, but she doesn’t even remember marrying me! I’ve shown her my copies of the wedding pictures, but it could have been somebody else I was married to for all she knows.” Azure reached them then and sat rather sullenly beside Que. He gave her a peck on the cheek as he passed her a drink. “For my dearest,” he smiled at her as she silently took the glass from his hand. She took a sip and only then decided to join in the conversation. “How’s Henri treating you now?” she asked Penny, who seemed uncharacteristically flustered for some reason. “He’s all right,” Penny confessed at last. “It’s just that he’s always acting like the perfect gentleman, and it really drives me up the wall sometimes. In fact, he took me to see his parents back in his hometown yesterday.” “Sounds like things are going serious,” Azure commented solemnly. “Actually, I was expecting you to tell me he’d been misbehaving. Then I’d have an excuse to go over there and give him a vicious kick.” The guests smiled but didn’t laugh, uncertain whether this was a threat or a joke. “Please don’t,” implored Penny. “His shin is still black and blue from when you kicked him the other day.” “That was because he deserved it,” smirked Azure. Penny looked at her, not understanding, and she added, “You don’t have to know why.” The cry of a gull circling overhead caused them to look up at the brilliant cloudless sky and follow it with their eyes, hands on the eyebrows shielding them from the bright rays of the sun. “It sure must be nice living here,” sighed Skye as she straightened her legs and propped herself up on her elbows. “The air is so sweet and fresh here, and the view is really something else. Great when you want to get away from everything.” “It’s OK,” was Azure’s only comment as she shrugged unconcernedly. “So,” began Penny, arching her trim eyebrows meaningfully. “When are you guys planning to have kids?” Que smiled and turned to look at his wife while giving her a hug. “Maybe later,” came Azure’s answer, scowling. “It’s still a bit too early for that.” “I just hope you’re on the pill then,” cautioned Penny. “Don’t use condoms. You don’t want to keep on checking whether they’ve been riddled with pinpricks all the time. Isn’t that so, Que?” She winked and Que flushed uncomfortably. “I’ve seen the condition of the condoms you stashed in the swimming pool locker. You naughty, naughty boy, you.” Que glanced worriedly at his wife but she ignored him. Instead, her eyes gleamed strangely as she asked, “How come I don’t hear you asking Skye the same question?” Skye’s cheeks reddened angrily as she answered, “Dark and I will decide when to have children when the right time comes along.” “Oh, goody-goody,” Azure rolled her eyes comically. “I can already hear the pitter-patter of tiny feet.” Hurt, Skye could only scowl at Azure, though she wisely kept her mouth shut. “How’s Midnight doing?” Que asked Penny, trying to divert attention from Skye and Azure. “OK, I guess,” Penny replied. “Though he still acts like a pain-in-you-know-where most times. I heard he only kicked Alric twice this week.” “Should have been more careful,” muttered Azure under her breath. When the others all looked at her, she smiled sheepishly and explained, “Alric, not Midnight.” “He even tried to kick the door down when Henri went with me to the stables the other day,” Penny added. “Now he’s scared stiff of him and vowed not to go too near the stables.” “Somebody should have had him disciplined,” sneered Skye, looking pointedly at Azure. “The horse, not Henri.” “Yeah, well,” replied Azure indifferently. “I happen to like him the way he is. Both of them, actually: the vain horse and the dumb human.” This time Penny flashed dagger eyes at Azure at her negative reference to Henri. “Here,” Que smiled and quickly proffered the canister of cake between them, trying to neutralize the air. “Why don’t we all taste this? Skye made it herself. She brought it especially for you, Azure.” His tactic worked. Everybody took a slice and smiled with satisfaction as the moist flavor melted in their mouths. “Best chocolate cake in the world,” Azure complimented with a grin. Skye felt the ice around her heart melt and beamed back at her. “You should have brought two.” “I’ve got some fruits here, too,” Que suddenly remembered, and he took out another container, this time filled to the brim with all sorts of fruits, and placed it in the center of the tablecloth. He pulled his wife closer and made her rest her head upon his lap. She complied and gazed up at his kindly azure eyes as he placed a grape into her mouth. Penny and Skye took the cue and stretched out relaxedly on the square cloth, hands grasped behind their heads as they sighed contentedly in the warm afternoon sun. Who cared if a storm was coming? They only knew that it was a perfect day then and that they had the good sense to enjoy it while it lasted. |